Selected quad for the lemma: death_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
death_n body_n punishment_n sin_n 6,173 5 5.0820 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A38590 Catechistical discovrses in vvhich, first, an easy and efficacious way is proposed for instruction of the ignorant, by a breife summe of the Christian doctrine here delivered and declared : secondly, the verity of the Romane Catholike faith is demonstrated by induction from all other religions that are in the world : thirdly, the methode of the Romane catechisme, which the Councell of Trent caused to be made, is commended to practice of instructing in doctrine, confirming in faith, and inciting to good life by catechisticall sermons / by A. E. Errington, Anthony, d. 1719? 1654 (1654) Wing E3246; ESTC R8938 430,353 784

There are 41 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

before_o it_o remain_v still_o there_o according_a to_o they_o neither_o be_v those_o similitude_n allege_v to_o any_o purpose_n by_o the_o father_n unless_o we_o understande_v a_o change_n of_o the_o former_a into_o a_o new_a substance_n as_o there_o be_v in_o they_o the_o juy_n bush_n before_o it_o be_v hang_v up_o be_v no_o sign_n of_o wine_n and_o when_o it_o be_v hang_v up_o it_o become_v a_o sign_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o above_o nature_n in_o that_o conversion_n because_o there_o be_v a_o change_n only_o in_o the_o signification_n which_o then_o it_o have_v but_o not_o in_o a_o new_a substance_n or_o nature_n but_o the_o holy_a father_n acknowledge_v some_o thing_n supernatural_a in_o this_o conversion_n and_o compare_v it_o with_o conversion_n of_o substance_n which_o be_v miraculous_a therefore_o there_o be_v here_o a_o transubstantiation_n or_o conversion_n in_o the_o substance_n otherwise_o there_o be_v no_o parity_n in_o their_o comparison_n nor_o connexion_n in_o their_o speech_n with_o what_o devotion_n we_o ought_v to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v of_o this_o sacrament_n we_o may_v understande_v something_o of_o the_o devotion_n which_o be_v due_a to_o it_o and_o think_v that_o so_o great_a a_o miracle_n which_o god_n work_v continual_o in_o his_o church_n to_o show_v his_o love_n to_o we_o and_o to_o enrich_v our_o soul_n oblige_v we_o to_o a_o high_a and_o eminent_a degree_n of_o gratitude_n to_o he_o and_o that_o all_o the_o devotion_n that_o we_o can_v possible_o stir_v up_o in_o ourselves_o be_v too_o little_a for_o it_o the_o apostle_n admonish_v we_o to_o try_v and_o to_o prove_v ourselves_o before_o we_o come_v to_o this_o mystery_n lest_o instead_o of_o life_n and_o happiness_n which_o we_o shall_v obtain_v by_o worthy_o receive_v it_o we_o incur_v judgement_n and_o death_n by_o a_o unworthy_a communion_n in_o mortal_a sin_n o_o how_o damnable_a be_v the_o malice_n of_o that_o man_n that_o come_v with_o such_o a_o sin_n to_o this_o communion_n to_o unite_v goodness_n to_o malice_n purity_n to_o impurity_n christ_n to_o his_o filthy_a soul_n thou_o stop_v thy_o nose_n at_o noisome_a carrion_n and_o loathsome_a stenche_n yet_o thou_o will_v force_v thy_o saviour_n into_o thy_o stink_a breast_n which_o be_v most_o horrible_a and_o loathsome_a to_o he_o until_o thou_o have_v prove_v and_o purge_v it_o what_o punishment_n may_v thou_o expect_v the_o ark_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v but_o a_o weak_a figure_n of_o christ_n yet_o enter_v into_o the_o citty_n of_o the_o philistiim_n the_o enemy_n of_o god_n they_o be_v punise_v with_o grievous_a plague_n and_o be_v set_v in_o their_o temple_n it_o strike_v down_o their_o dagon_n and_o break_v it_o in_o piece_n for_o only_o stand_v beside_o it_o then_o how_o dare_v thou_o that_o be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n come_v so_o bold_o unto_o christ_n as_o to_o take_v he_o in_o to_o thou_o 1.5_o reg._n 1.5_o the_o philistiim_v use_v outward_o great_a reverence_n to_o the_o ark_n carry_v it_o from_o city_n to_o city_n and_o set_v it_o in_o their_o temple_n beside_o their_o god_n yet_o touch_v it_o as_o idolatour_n with_o impure_a hand_n 1.5_o reg._n 1.5_o they_o be_v punish_v with_o such_o sore_n and_o disease_n that_o as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v the_o howl_n of_o every_o city_n go_v up_o into_o heaven_n and_o when_o it_o come_v from_o among_o they_o and_o stand_v in_o the_o confine_n of_o bethsame_n although_o the_o bethsamit_n behold_v it_o with_o joy_n and_o receive_v it_o with_o holocau_v and_o victimes_o yet_o seaventy_n man_n of_o the_o people_n and_o fifty_o thousand_o of_o the_o common_a people_n be_v strike_v of_o our_o lord_n for_o behold_v it_o that_o lament_v they_o cry_v out_o reg._n 1.17_o who_o can_v stand_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o holy_a lord_n god_n oza_n be_v punish_v a_o israelite_n also_o and_o servant_n of_o god_n fortouching_a it_o sudden_o and_o as_o he_o think_v upon_o necessity_n to_o hold_v it_o up_o from_o fall_v yet_o because_o hedid_v it_o not_o with_o sufficient_a warive_v it_o cost_v he_o his_o life_n be_v present_o strike_v dead_a in_o the_o place_n and_o dare_v thou_o come_v so_o bold_o not_o to_o touch_v the_o ark_n but_o to_o receive_v the_o b._n sacrament_n in_o mortal_a sin_n how_o know_v thou_o that_o god_n will_v spare_v thou_o more_o than_o he_o do_v they_o thy_o irreverence_n be_v infinite_o great_a than_o they_o be_v thou_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o when_o thou_o profane_v it_o thou_o abuse_v as_o much_o as_o ever_o thou_o can_v that_o sacred_a blood_n thou_o apprehend_v and_o imprisone_v thy_o saviour_n within_o thou_o with_o the_o jew_n thou_o persecute_v his_o honour_n and_o life_n and_o this_o be_v a_o christian_n to_o christ_n thy_o master_n and_o who_o must_v one_o day_n be_v thy_o judge_n if_o thou_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o heinous_a crime_n and_o shall_v entertain_v in_o thy_o house_n he_o who_o be_v short_o to_o call_v thou_o to_o his_o tribunal_n and_o to_o judge_v thou_o will_v thou_o not_o seek_v to_o please_v he_o in_o his_o entertainment_n do_v so_o then_o to_o christ_n give_v he_o entertainment_n as_o he_o desire_v that_o he_o may_v prove_v afterward_o a_o favourable_a judge_n to_o thou_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o miracle_n of_o miracle_n the_o memorial_n of_o the_o marvellous_a thing_n by_o which_o god_n will_v show_v his_o love_n to_o we_o 2._o zach._n 2._o and_o to_o abuse_v he_o in_o it_o be_v to_o touch_v he_o in_o the_o apple_n of_o his_o eye_n and_o to_o wound_v he_o at_o the_o hart_n for_o every_o thing_n as_o it_o be_v high_a in_o perfection_n so_o the_o contempt_n of_o it_o be_v of_o a_o high_a malice_n and_o this_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_a of_o all_o the_o sacrament_n infinite_a in_o perfection_n the_o irreverence_n do_v to_o it_o be_v of_o the_o high_a and_o of_o infinite_a malice_n and_o therefore_o it_o deserve_v great_a punishment_n s._n paul_n threaten_v judgement_n to_o those_o that_o receive_v unworthy_o as_o not_o discern_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n therefore_o say_v he_o be_v there_o among_o you_o many_o weak_a 1.11_o cor._n 1.11_o and_o feeble_a and_o many_o sleep_n that_o be_v to_o say_v many_o be_v sick_a and_o by_o but_o if_o the_o disease_n and_o death_n of_o those_o day_n proceed_v from_o thence_o that_o the_o b._n sacrament_n be_v not_o receive_v with_o sufficient_a reverence_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o these_o deadly_a time_n in_o which_o now_o we_o live_v but_o that_o they_o have_v proceed_v from_o the_o same_o cause_n the_o b._n sacrament_n have_v be_v of_o late_a year_n so_o extreme_o profane_v the_o beginner_n of_o these_o ●_z who_o so_o often_o consecrate_v the_o sacred_a host_n and_o sacrilegious_o receive_v it_o bring_v into_o the_o christian_n world_n these_o flood_n of_o bloodshed_n which_o still_o continue_v to_o the_o massacre_n of_o many_o thousand_o of_o christian_n all_o ready_a past_a and_o now_o without_o doubt_n it_o be_v a_o great_a cause_n of_o death_n and_o misery_n to_o we_o than_o it_o be_v in_o s._n paul_n day_n to_o christian_n consider_v therefore_o when_o thou_o go_v to_o receive_v what_o it_o be_v that_o then_o thou_o receive_v and_o prepare_v in_o thyself_o love_n and_o reverence_n towards_o it_o it_o be_v christ_n thy_o redeemer_n thy_o judge_n and_o thy_o omninipotent_a god_n if_o thou_o receive_v he_o in_o mortal_a sin_n thou_o damne_v thy_o soul_n by_o a_o sin_n above_o mortal_a sin_n which_o be_v of_o frailty_n it_o be_v of_o malice_n without_o either_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n to_o thyself_o but_o only_o for_o the_o devil_n pleasure_n that_o tempt_v thou_o to_o that_o sacrilege_n humble_a thyself_o unto_o god_n and_o prepare_v thyself_o with_o a_o clean_a conscience_n to_o receive_v into_o thou_o that_o sovereign_a guest_n which_o the_o angel_n of_o heaven_n desire_v to_o behold_v and_o with_o tremble_a reverence_n adore_v his_o glory_n dispose_v thou_o thyself_o with_o angelical_a reverence_n and_o purity_n to_o receive_v he_o the_o first_o thing_n which_o thou_o must_v do_v be_v to_o make_v a_o good_a and_o entire_a confession_n of_o rhy_z sin_n as_o i_o shall_v ●hew_v in_o the_o next_o sacrament_n and_o not_o only_o to_o cleanse_v they_o soul_n from_o mortal_a but_o as_o much_o as_o thou_o can_v also_o from_o venial_a sin_n after_o confession_n give_v not_o thyself_o to_o unnecessary_a imployement_n or_o conversation_n which_o may_v cool_v and_o hinder_v thy_o devotion_n but_o keep_v thyself_o more_o retire_v in_o thy_o mind_n pray_v until_o mass_n begin_v and_o if_o it_o begin_v not_o present_o thou_o may_v read_v in_o some_o treatise_n of_o the_o b._n sacrament_n if_o thou_o have_v it_o or_o walk_v quiet_o until_o mass_n at_o massetime_o attend_v devout_o
his_o life_n time_n another_o sin_v and_o be_v punish_v with_o the_o death_n of_o wife_n or_o child_n another_o receive_v some_o affront_n and_o pine_v away_o with_o grief_n and_o malice_n that_o he_o can_v not_o revenge_v himself_o another_o have_v his_o house_n burn_v or_o rob_v another_o have_v his_o crop_n waste_v and_o destroy_v another_o have_v disease_n and_o loss_n in_o his_o cattle_n and_o a_o thousand_o kind_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n be_v just_o inflict_v upon_o man_n for_o their_o sin_n and_o come_v not_o by_o chance_n as_o some_o will_v persuade_v themselves_o for_o god_n see_v the_o malice_n of_o all_o our_o action_n and_o because_o he_o will_v not_o publish_v they_o until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o punish_v they_o with_o such_o affliction_n as_o be_v common_a to_o all_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o repentance_n this_o doctrine_n be_v prove_v by_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v to_o the_o man_n who_o he_o cure_v of_o eight_o and_o thirty_o year_n infirmity_n 5._o io._n 5._o behold_v thou_o be_v make_v whole_a sin_v no_o more_o lest_o some_o worse_a thing_n chance_n to_o thou_o in_o which_o we_o see_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o sin_n be_v punish_v with_o temporal_a affliction_n as_o corporal_a infirmity_n and_o second_o that_o if_o they_o mend_v not_o with_o those_o but_o sin_n again_o they_o may_v expect_v some_o worse_a thing_n even_o temporal_o and_o what_o be_v that_o a_o sudden_a and_o miserable_a death_n for_o we_o be_v never_o so_o much_o in_o danger_n of_o our_o life_n as_o when_o we_o be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n because_o the_o devil_n have_v then_o the_o possession_n of_o our_o soul_n bring_v we_o as_o much_o as_o he_o can_v upon_o peril_n of_o death_n to_o secure_v his_o possession_n and_o therefore_o balaam_n that_o wicked_a prophet_n counsel_v king_n balac_n to_o draw_v the_o israelit_v into_o sin_n that_o he_o may_v more_o easy_o ove_z come_z nu_fw-la ortg._n ho._n 20._o in_o 25._o nu_fw-la and_o kill_v they_o as_o though_o he_o have_v say_v say_v origen_n this_o be_v a_o people_n which_o sight_v not_o by_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o by_o the_o favour_n of_o their_o god_n make_v they_o to_o offend_v he_o and_o the_o victory_n be_v thou_o own_o and_o for_o this_o thou_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o overthrow_v their_o chastity_n fight_v not_o with_o they_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n bring_v not_o man_n to_o assalt_n and_o resist_v they_o bring_v woman_n to_o tempt_v they_o to_o sin_n sin_n will_v dull_v their_o weapon_n weaken_v their_o strength_n and_o ●ill_v they_o a_o company_n of_o madianite_n woman_n be_v bring_v for_o that_o purpose_n they_o draw_v the_o israelit_v to_o fornicate_v with_o they_o and_o after_o that_o to_o adore_v their_o idol_n then_o god_n forsake_v they_o and_o they_o be_v overthrow_v in_o their_o sin_n thus_o do_v origen_n describe_v that_o passage_n and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n he_o have_v these_o word_n nu_fw-la orig._n in_o c._n 31._o nu_fw-la the_o israelit_v when_o they_o come_v against_o madian_n be_v number_v six_o hundred_o thousand_o of_o sight_a man_n yet_o all_o these_o when_o th●y_o be_v in_o sin_n be_v overcome_v by_o the_o madianites_fw-la and_o the_o madianites_fw-la again_o who_o have_v overcome_v six_o hundred_o thousand_o of_o israelite_n when_o they_o be_v in_o sin_n be_v overcome_v themselves_o by_o twelve_o thousand_o of_o they_o when_o they_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n it_o be_v to_o this_o purpose_n all_o that_o which_o achior_n say_v to_o holofernes_n who_o lead_v a_o army_n with_o intention_n to_o subdue_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o pass_v without_o resistance_n through_o many_o people_n to_o the_o border_n of_o israel_n where_o as_o other_o at_o his_o approach_n have_v present_o send_v messenger_n to_o yield_v to_o he_o he_o see_v the_o israelit_n to_o make_v preparation_n of_o war_n and_o to_o fortify_v place_n against_o he_o and_o call_v his_o captain_n together_o to_o inform_v himself_o of_o the_o nature_n and_o strength_n of_o that_o people_n achior_n captain_n of_o the_o ammonite_n declare_v unto_o he_o the_o beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o the_o israelit_v what_o strange_a victory_n they_o have_v get_v by_o the_o help_n of_o god_n and_o how_o easy_o they_o have_v be_v defeat_v when_o they_o be_v in_o sin_n and_o although_o he_o counsel_v not_o as_o balaam_n do_v to_o draw_v they_o into_o sin_n yet_o he_o advise_v he_o at_o least_o to_o inform_v himself_o well_o whether_o they_o be_v in_o sin_n or_o no_o before_o he_o assault_v they_o 5._o judith_n 5._o now_o therefore_o my_o lord_n search_v if_o there_o be_v any_o iniquity_n of_o they_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o god_n and_o let_v we_o go_v up_o to_o they_o because_o their_o god_n will_v deliver_v they_o to_o thou_o but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o offence_n of_o this_o people_n before_o their_o god_n we_o can_v not_o resist_v they_o because_o god_n will_v defend_v they_o and_o it_o cost_v holofernes_n his_o life_n and_o the_o overthrow_n of_o his_o whole_a army_n because_o he_o will_v not_o follow_v his_o counsel_n for_o the_o israelit_v cry_v humble_o to_o god_n and_o please_a he_o he_o fight_v himself_o so_o for_o they_o that_o holofernes_n be_v kill_v and_o his_o huge_a army_n put_v to_o flight_n by_o one_o woman_n only_o to_o what_o purpose_n now_o shall_v the_o potentate_n of_o this_o world_n build_v upon_o humane_a pollicy_n and_o strength_n to_o raise_v great_a monarchys_n to_o themselves_o and_o their_o child_n when_o all_o their_o power_n be_v so_o easy_o confound_v they_o give_v themselves_o to_o sin_n and_o to_o neglect_v of_o their_o charge_n and_o then_o god_n who_o support_v they_o let_v they_o fall_v and_o they_o be_v dash_v to_o piece_n he_o raise_v another_o to_o stand_v as_o long_o as_o it_o please_v he_o 14._o esni_n 14._o i_o will_v destroy_v the_o name_n of_o babylon_n and_o the_o remain_v and_o bu●de_n and_o progeny_n an●_n i_o will_v make_v it_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o hedge_n ●●gg_fw-mi and_o i_o will_v sweep_v it_o with_o a_o besom_n wear_v it_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n upon_o which_o place_n s._n hierome_n have_v these_o word_n esa_n hiero._n in_o c._n 14._o esa_n babylon_n be_v by_o the_o description_n of_o author_n a_o city_n build_v on_o a_o plane_n f●wers_n quare_fw-la in_o form_n and_o have_v from_o corner_n to_o corner_n sixteen_o mile_n so_o that_o in_o compass_v it_o contain_v threescore_o and_o four_o mile_n the_o tower_n or_o capitol_n theirof_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v four_o mile_n in_o height_n and_o for_o the_o marble_n temple_n golden_a statua_n and_o street_n shine_v with_o gold_n and_o precious_a stone_n it_o be_v almost_o incredible_a that_o which_o be_v record_v of_o it_o all_o this_o i_o say_v to_o show_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o sin_n for_o now_o we_o see_v the_o ruin_n only_o leave_v and_o those_o become_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o hedgehogg_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v true_o fullfil_v i_o will_v sweep_v it_o with_o a_o besom_n wear_v it_o it_o be_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n to_o ight_v against_o his_o enemy_n and_o to_o defend_v his_o friend_n and_o it_o be_v the_o malice_n of_o sin_n to_o destroy_v those_o that_o commit_v it_o and_o of_o the_o devil_n to_o seek_v the_o death_n and_o destruction_n of_o those_o that_o serve_v he_o prosperity_n victory_n and_o glory_n be_v the_o reward_n of_o virtue_n adversity_n and_o death_n be_v the_o stipend_n of_o sin_n and_o this_o be_v so_o certain_a and_o general_a in_o itself_o that_o the_o holy_a church_n say_v no_o adversity_n shall_v hurt_v where_o no_o iniquity_n reign_v the_o four_o evil_a of_o sin_n be_v that_o it_o bring_v misery_n not_o only_o upon_o the_o sinner_n themselves_o but_o also_o upon_o their_o kindred_n and_o friend_n it_o happen_v sometime_o that_o a_o man_n have_v commit_v some_o grievous_a sin_n rest_v himself_o with_o out_o punishment_n live_v in_o prosperity_n perhaps_o all_o his_o life_n time_n and_o after_o his_o death_n when_o he_o be_v in_o hell_n than_o his_o child_n or_o alliance_n be_v strike_v with_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o become_v miserable_a in_o their_o body_n or_o good_n which_o prosper_v not_o with_o they_o through_o his_o sin_n thus_o many_o be_v punish_v here_o in_o their_o body_n with_o temporal_a affliction_n direct_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o and_o indirect_o also_o in_o their_o soul_n for_o that_o they_o follow_v their_o evil_a footstep_n and_o commit_v sin_n by_o their_o example_n i_o be_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n mighty_a jealous_a 20._o exod._n 20._o visit_v the_o iniquity_n of_o father_n upon_o the_o child_n upon_o the_o three_o and_o four_o generation_n of_o those_o that_o hate_v i_o i_o be_o see_v the_o nakedness_n of_o his_o father_n no_o when_o he_o be_v a_o sleep_n deride_v
himself_o signify_v his_o death_n on_o the_o cros_n 3._o io._n 3._o say_v as_o moses_n exalt_v the_o serpent_n in_o the_o desert_n so_o must_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v exalt_v christ_n suffer_v voluntary_o of_o his_o own_o freewill_n voluntary_o christ_n suffer_v voluntary_o and_o can_v if_o it_o have_v pease_v he_o have_v escape_v all_o or_o any_o part_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n this_o he_o often_o show_v in_o his_o life_n time_n sometime_o when_o they_o will_v have_v kill_v he_o he_o become_v present_o invisible_a to_o their_o sight_n and_o walk_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o without_o be_v see_v sometime_o he_o prevent_v they_o absent_v himself_o see_v their_o inward_a thought_n and_o heart_n to_o be_v bend_v against_o he_o sometime_o he_o show_v that_o he_o have_v power_n over_o their_o mind_n move_v they_o as_o he_o will_v and_o asswage_v the_o malice_n which_o be_v in_o they_o until_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o suffering_n come_v and_o when_o his_o hour_n be_v come_v he_o come_v forth_o among_o his_o enemy_n and_o even_o then_o he_o move_v multitude_n of_o people_n to_o follow_v and_o to_o glorify_v he_o but_o a_o few_o day_n after_o when_o they_o come_v to_o apprehend_v he_o he_o will_v then_o be_v take_v and_o will_v not_o defend_v himself_o or_o be_v defend_v by_o other_o he_o will_v with_o a_o word_n of_o his_o mouth_n strike_v they_o down_o to_o the_o ground_n to_o show_v that_o he_o have_v they_o in_o his_o power_n and_o can_v have_v free_v himself_o but_o he_o will_v let_v they_o rise_v again_o and_o will_v go_v away_o prisoner_n with_o they_o to_o fulfil_v the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n by_o suffering_n and_o die_v for_o us._n christ_n suffer_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o all_o and_o redeem_v all_o that_o be_v by_o his_o passion_n he_o purchase_v mean_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o these_o mean_n be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n those_o that_o be_v baptize_v and_o receive_v worthy_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n in_o they_o those_o that_o be_v not_o baptize_v or_o receive_v not_o the_o sacrament_n as_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o they_o perish_v not_o through_o any_o defect_n in_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n by_o which_o they_o have_v sufficient_a mean_n to_o be_v save_v but_o through_o their_o own_o sin_n because_o they_o will_v not_o apply_v those_o mean_n to_o themselves_o which_o christ_n by_o his_o passion_n procure_v for_o their_o salvation_n the_o least_o pain_n of_o our_o saviour_n passion_n or_o the_o least_o action_n which_o he_o do_v in_o his_o life_n time_n have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v redeem_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o a_o thousand_o world_n if_o it_o have_v be_v offer_v to_o that_o end_n by_o he_o as_o the_o full_a price_n of_o our_o redemption_n because_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o divine_a person_n which_o be_v of_o infinite_a dignity_n but_o it_o be_v not_o intend_v so_o by_o he_o he_o overvalue_v the_o purchase_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o by_o a_o superabundant_a grace_n will_v give_v more_o than_o he_o need_v when_o he_o give_v his_o life_n for_o they_o and_o will_v have_v nothing_o to_o stand_v for_o the_o price_n of_o our_o redemption_n without_o his_o death_n this_o he_o will_v do_v to_o testify_v his_o love_n towards_o we_o and_o to_o give_v we_o a_o example_n of_o many_o virtue_n quest_n what_o do_v we_o get_v by_o christ_n redeem_v we_o answ_n we_o get_v the_o forgiunesse_fw-fr of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o our_o good_a work_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n apply_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v their_o virtue_n and_o effect_n by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n those_o that_o worthy_o receive_v they_o be_v sanctify_v and_o have_v the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o be_v then_o in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n the_o good_a work_n which_o in_o that_o state_n be_v do_v by_o they_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o have_v proportion_n to_o supernatural_a glory_n the_o sacrament_n therefore_o have_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n power_n and_o virtue_n to_o sanctify_v we_o we_o have_v by_o his_o merit_n the_o forgiunesse_fw-fr of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o our_o good_a work_n man_n have_v commit_v sin_n in_o paradise_n and_o all_o mankind_n be_v infect_v with_o that_o sin_n and_o our_o nature_n be_v once_o taint_v it_o corrupt_v still_o more_o and_o more_o and_o we_o fall_v in_o our_o life_n time_n into_o many_o actual_a sin_n all_o the_o good_a work_n which_o we_o can_v do_v be_v of_o no_o value_n nor_o can_v we_o by_o any_o mean_n make_v satisfaction_n for_o any_o sin_n either_o original_a or_o actual_a because_o there_o be_v no_o condignity_n in_o person_n and_o work_n betwixt_o we_o and_o god_n that_o be_v offend_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v therefore_o incarnate_v in_o christ_n that_o the_o divine_a nature_n unite_n to_o itself_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n may_v so_o dignify_v it_o by_o that_o union_n in_o he_o that_o he_o can_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o our_o sin_n and_o obtain_v for_o we_o the_o remission_n of_o they_o and_o that_o our_o good_a work_n be_v then_o do_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n may_v become_v acceptable_a to_o god_n and_o proportionable_a to_o glory_n which_o of_o themselves_o they_o can_v not_o be_v we_o can_v have_v sin_v still_o more_o and_o more_o heap_v sin_n upon_o sin_n and_o increase_v our_o damnation_n but_o we_o can_v have_v do_v nothing_o in_o that_o state_n by_o which_o we_o can_v rise_v from_o any_o sin_n so_o that_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o our_o good_a work_n to_o the_o obtain_n of_o everlasting_a glory_n be_v to_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o merit_n and_o power_n of_o christ_n passion_n which_o be_v actual_o apply_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o apostle_n will_v particular_o profess_v in_o the_o creed_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o he_o die_v to_o confound_v those_o haeretik_n that_o shall_v deny_v his_o death_n as_o some_o have_v do_v these_o be_v sufficient_o refute_v by_o this_o article_n and_o by_o all_o the_o evangelist_n affirm_v that_o he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n that_o be_v be_v to_o say_v that_o his_o ghost_n spirit_n or_o soul_n which_o be_v all_o one_o depart_v and_o be_v separate_v from_o his_o body_n death_n be_v noht_v else_o but_o the_o departure_n or_o separation_n of_o the_o soul_n from_o the_o body_n for_o this_o reason_n also_o the_o apostle_n will_v declare_v that_o christ_n be_v bury_v to_o confirm_v his_o be_v dead_a but_o although_o he_o will_v have_v his_o body_n to_o be_v bury_v as_o the_o body_n of_o other_o man_n yet_o he_o will_v preserve_v it_o from_o corruption_n in_o the_o earth_n because_o it_o be_v most_o decent_a that_o that_o sacred_a body_n which_o be_v so_o miraculous_o frame_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o corrupt_v the_o virginity_n of_o his_o mother_n shall_v after_o death_n be_v free_a from_o all_o corruption_n according_a to_o that_o which_o the_o holy_a king_n have_v prophesy_v thou_o shall_v not_o give_v thy_o holy_a one_o to_o see_v corruption_n 15._o ps_n 15._o to_o conceive_v something_o of_o the_o greatness_n of_o this_o mystery_n we_o may_v consider_v who_o it_o be_v that_o suffer_v these_o thing_n that_o it_o be_v one_o who_o person_n infinite_o surpass_v in_o power_n wisdom_n beauty_n riches_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o dignity_n and_o goodness_n the_o most_o renown_a prince_n that_o ever_o be_v in_o the_o world_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o horrible_a thing_n to_o think_v of_o the_o murder_n of_o any_o man_n and_o much_o more_o of_o some_o great_a and_o gracious_a prince_n and_o a_o cruel_a spectacle_n to_o behold_v it_o what_o feel_v aught_o christiin_v to_o have_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o consider_v it_o but_o it_o be_v but_o a_o weak_a comparison_n to_o compare_v christ_n to_o any_o earthly_a prince_n 1._o io._n 1._o s._n john_n say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o word_n which_o be_v with_o god_n and_o that_o this_o word_n be_v god_n o_o almighty_a god_n what_o then_o shall_v we_o say_v or_o think_v of_o this_o mystery_n thy_o power_n and_o majesty_n seem_v here_o to_o be_v lessen_v thy_o wisdom_n be_v despise_v thy_o goodness_n question_v bring_v to_o trial_n and_o condemn_v o_o bless_a saviour_n who_o s._n paul_n describe_v to_o be_v he_o who_o god_n have_v make_v the_o heir_n of_o all_o 1_o heb._n 1_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o glory_n and_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o substance_n how_o come_v thy_o brightness_n to_o be_v
so_o obscure_v and_o thy_o sacred_a and_o life_n give_v face_n to_o become_v pale_a and_o void_a of_o life_n as_o a_o root_n from_o a_o thirsty_a ground_n that_o there_o be_v no_o beauty_n nor_o comeliness_n in_o it_o it_o be_v by_o we_o that_o thou_o come_v into_o this_o plight_n thou_o do_v bear_v our_o sin_n and_o they_o put_v thou_o to_o pain_n and_o disfigure_v thou_o think_v now_o o_o christian_n of_o that_o which_o you_o believe_v and_o confider_v who_o he_o be_v and_o what_o he_o suffer_v for_o you_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n suffer_v for_o man_n the_o master_n for_o the_o servant_n the_o creator_n for_o his_o creature_n he_o that_o make_v angel_n and_o man_n heaven_n and_o earth_n he_o of_o who_o and_o by_o who_o and_o in_o who_o be_v all_o thing_n he_o bear_v our_o infirmity_n our_o sorrow_n he_o carry_v 11._o rom._n 11._o and_o become_v as_o a_o leper_n strike_v of_o god_n and_o humble_v 53._o esa_n 53._o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o iniquity_n and_o with_o the_o wail_n of_o his_o stripe_n we_o be_v heal_v our_o sin_n draw_v blood_n of_o his_o sacred_a body_n and_o crucify_v and_o kill_v he_o heaven_n stand_v astonish_v the_o sun_n be_v ecclypse_v a_o terrible_a darkness_n be_v spread_v over_o the_o earth_n the_o earth_n be_v shake_v grave_n open_v and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o dead_a roze_v up_o to_o life_n again_o at_o this_o mystery_n and_o shall_v it_o make_v no_o impression_n in_o we_o behold_v o_o christian_n christ_n expire_v on_o the_o cros_n and_o say_v often_o with_o yourselves_o who_o be_v this_o that_o be_v crucify_a and_o dead_a who_o be_v this_o that_o be_v crucify_v and_o dead_a it_o be_v the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n who_o the_o angles_n adore_v the_o latchet_n of_o who_o shoe_n s._n john_n baptist_n be_v not_o worthy_a to_o loose_v think_v then_o again_o what_o he_o be_v crucify_v for_o it_o be_v to_o take_v away_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o bless_v we_o with_o everlasting_a glory_n o_o bless_a lord_n o_o god_n our_o saviour_n how_o great_a be_v thy_o love_n to_o we_o and_o thy_o hatred_n to_o sin_n that_o can_v cause_v the_o miracle_n of_o thy_o incarnation_n and_o death_n for_o our_o redemption_n i_o rejoice_v in_o thy_o merit_n by_o which_o i_o be_o redeem_v and_o be_v now_o at_o liberty_n i_o dedicate_v myself_o for_o ever_o to_o thy_o service_n keep_v thou_o my_o soul_n and_o let_v it_o never_o forsake_v thou_o the_o benefit_n which_o we_o have_v by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v praefigure_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n where_o guilty_a person_n that_o have_v sle_z to_o the_o citty_n of_o sanctuary_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n and_o go_v home_o pardon_v at_o the_o death_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n our_o high_a priest_n be_v jesus_n christ_n heaven_n be_v our_o bless_a home_n sin_n banish_v we_o from_o thence_o but_o thither_o we_o return_v again_o by_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n 10._o heb._n 10._o have_v confidence_n say_v the_o apostle_n in_o the_o enter_v of_o the_o holy_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o serve_v he_o as_o we_o ought_v and_o then_o indeed_o we_o may_v have_v confidence_n in_o he_o the_o five_o article_n he_o descend_v into_o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n the_o apostle_n have_v in_o the_o former_a article_n profess_v the_o passion_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n declare_v now_o his_o victory_n and_o triumph_v over_o it_o that_o which_o by_o this_o article_n be_v propose_v to_o be_v believe_v be_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o christ_n depart_v in_o death_n from_o his_o body_n descend_v true_o into_o hell_n for_o as_o long_o as_o his_o body_n remain_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n his_o soul_n be_v separate_v from_o it_o and_o all_o that_o while_o be_v descend_v into_o hell_n some_o haeretik_n have_v wicked_o deny_v this_o article_n of_o christ_n his_o descension_n into_o hell_n ignorant_o understand_v by_o hell_n his_o sepulchre_n not_o consider_v that_o his_o descend_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n be_v profess_v before_o in_o the_o former_a article_n and_o therefore_o there_o need_v not_o another_o article_n to_o repeat_v it_o over_o again_o and_o to_o say_v that_o he_o descend_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n neither_o be_v it_o a_o proper_a manner_n of_o speech_n in_o that_o sense_n for_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v then_o dead_a and_o descend_v not_o but_o be_v lay_v by_o other_o in_o the_o sepulchre_n this_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v understand_v of_o his_o body_n descend_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n but_o of_o his_o soul_n descend_v into_o hell_n ancient_o by_o hell_n some_o place_n in_o general_n be_v understand_v where_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n reside_v after_o death_n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o take_v for_o the_o place_n of_o the_o damn_a but_o also_o for_o the_o residence_n of_o the_o just_a as_o when_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n jacob_n mourn_v for_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n joseph_n say_v 37._o gen._n 37._o i_o will_v descend_v unto_o my_o son_n into_o hell_n and_o when_o the_o apostle_n say_v 2._o phil._n 2._o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n every_o knee_n bow_n of_o the_o caelestial_o terrestrial_o and_o insernals_n for_o hell_n in_o latin_a be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v a_o place_n inferior_a unto_o we_o or_o below_o we_o which_o be_v therefore_o in_o the_o earth_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o which_o we_o may_v distinguish_v four_o place_n in_o the_o earth_n the_o receptacle_n of_o soul_n depart_v hell_n four_o kind_n of_o hell_n first_o there_o be_v the_o low_a hell_n of_o everlasting_a damnation_n which_o be_v the_o further_a place_n from_o heaven_n as_o most_o suitable_a to_o those_o who_o life_n and_o action_n be_v further_a of_o and_o most_o opposite_a to_o god_n and_o therefore_o in_o respect_n of_o punishment_n it_o be_v the_o deep_a hell_n second_o the_o next_o above_o that_o in_o pain_n be_v purgatory_n three_o above_o purgatory_n be_v the_o place_n where_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o be_v detain_v who_o die_v only_o in_o original_a sin_n four_o above_o that_o there_o be_v a_o place_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o just_a that_o die_v before_o christ_n not_o have_v the_o guilt_n of_o any_o sin_n or_o satisfaction_n to_o make_v for_o it_o for_o it_o be_v not_o convenient_a that_o any_o shall_v enter_v into_o heaven_n before_o christ_n who_o purchase_v it_o for_o all_o and_o therefore_o those_o soul_n remain_v in_o a_o inferior_a place_n until_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o he_o descend_v to_o they_o free_v they_o from_o that_o place_n this_o be_v some_o time_n call_v the_o bosom_n of_o abraham_n because_o abraham_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o comprise_v as_o it_o be_v in_o he_o all_o the_o just_a as_o christ_n come_v of_o his_o seed_n who_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o the_o just_a thither_o therefore_o do_v our_o bless_a saviour_n descend_v to_o bless_v and_o to_o free_v those_o holy_a soul_n and_o perhaps_o he_o will_v also_o show_v himself_o to_o the_o soul_n of_o purgatory_n for_o their_o comfort_n as_o also_o to_o the_o damn_a soul_n for_o their_o terror_n and_o rebuke_n christ_n be_v bury_v on_o the_o friday_n on_o which_o he_o suffer_v for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cros_n be_v hold_v in_o that_o ignominy_n that_o the_o law_n command_v those_o that_o be_v crucify_a to_o be_v take_v from_o the_o cros_n on_o the_o same_o day_n after_o his_o burial_n he_o remain_v in_o the_o sepulchre_n all_o that_o day_n and_o all_o saturday_n and_o part_n of_o sunday_n until_o about_o break_v of_o day_n all_o which_o time_n his_o soul_n be_v descend_v into_o hell_n then_o he_o release_v the_o just_a out_o of_o that_o place_n in_o which_o they_o be_v detain_v and_o bring_v they_o with_o he_o to_o the_o sepulchre_n where_o unite_n his_o soul_n and_o body_n together_o again_o the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a not_o as_o those_o who_o have_v be_v reviue_v by_o the_o power_n of_o other_o to_o a_o second_o life_n and_o to_o die_v a_o second_o death_n but_o by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o aroze_v again_o to_o die_v no_o more_o for_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v allwais_o present_a with_o his_o body_n and_o soul_n as_o unite_v with_o they_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o person_n he_o have_v power_n to_o raise_v himself_o and_o by_o his_o own_o power_n he_o take_v life_n again_o and_o aroze_v glorious_a and_o therefore_o he_o say_v of_o himself_o 10._o io._n 10._o i_o yield_v my_o life_n etc._n etc._n i_o yield_v it_o of_o myself_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o yield_v it_o and_o i_o have_v power_n to_o take_v it_o again_o we_o read_v of_o diverse_a who_o have_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n both_o before_o and_o since_o the_o
against_o the_o devil_n power_n six_o the_o corporal_a life_n of_o man_n as_o he_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o society_n of_o other_o man_n require_v a_o superior_a authority_n to_o be_v in_o some_o for_o the_o govern_n of_o other_o and_o so_o a_o orderly_a government_n be_v necessary_a for_o we_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o for_o this_o we_o have_v the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n in_o which_o power_n be_v give_v to_o some_o in_o spiritual_a thing_n seaventh_o for_o the_o continuance_n and_o conservation_n of_o humane_a nature_n a_o continual_a succession_n and_o propagation_n of_o mankind_n be_v necessary_a in_o the_o world_n and_o for_o this_o the_o spiritual_a life_n of_o man_n require_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o a_o sacrament_n for_o the_o orderly_a propagation_n of_o man_n and_o the_o increase_n of_o soul_n to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n this_o be_v by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o matrimony_n which_o as_o it_o be_v a_o duty_n of_o nature_n be_v only_o for_o corporal_a generation_n but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n it_o give_v grace_n for_o the_o increase_n of_o soul_n in_o the_o divine_a worship_n the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n shall_v appear_v furthermore_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n in_o that_o which_o i_o have_v to_o say_v of_o every_o sacrament_n in_o particular_a the_o same_o be_v declare_v by_o diverse_a counsel_n and_o although_o the_o father_n have_v have_v no_o occasion_n in_o their_o writing_n to_o name_v they_o altogether_o yet_o they_o have_v make_v mention_n of_o they_o all_o as_o occasion_v serve_v neither_o be_v it_o necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v assign_v the_o time_n when_o every_o sacrament_n in_o particular_a be_v institute_v of_o christ_n we_o know_v the_o time_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o some_o of_o they_o and_o we_o know_v that_o for_o forcy_n day_n betwixt_o his_o resurrection_n and_o his_o ascension_n he_o frequent_o appear_v unto_o his_o apostle_n and_o teach_v they_o many_o thing_n which_o they_o be_v to_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o we_o know_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n must_v be_v of_o christ_n teach_n and_o ordain_v we_o have_v for_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o same_o authority_n that_o we_o have_v for_o any_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o wit_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o although_o it_o declare_v not_o the_o time_n when_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v yet_o it_o assure_v we_o of_o all_o their_o verity_n and_o so_o it_o do_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n casulan_n ad_fw-la casulan_n s._n augustine_n give_v we_o this_o rule_n that_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n if_o their_o beginning_n be_v not_o know_v they_o be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o such_o be_v the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n therefore_o they_o be_v of_o apostolical_a tradition_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o general_a let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o their_o particular_a declaration_n of_o baptism_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n baptism_n be_v common_o call_v the_o door_n of_o the_o sacrament_n because_o it_o be_v the_o entrance_n to_o the_o rest_n necessary_a to_o be_v have_v before_o they_o for_o until_o we_o be_v christen_v we_o be_v not_o christian_n and_o until_o we_o be_v make_v christian_n we_o can_v not_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n baptism_n be_v our_o first_o spiritual_a generation_n and_o before_o generation_n we_o have_v no_o operation_n because_o we_o be_v not_o so_o before_o baptism_n we_o have_v no_o spiritual_a be_v in_o grace_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v to_o be_v suppose_v before_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v the_o word_n of_o s._n john_n be_v then_o verify_v he_o give_v they_o power_n to_o be_v make_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1._o io._n 1._o for_o as_o we_o be_v bear_v the_o child_n of_o adam_n and_o of_o wrath_n in_o our_o corporal_a birth_n so_o in_o baptism_n we_o be_v bear_v the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o grace_n through_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o necessary_a then_o as_o generation_n be_v to_o the_o corporal_a be_v of_o all_o man_n so_o necessary_a be_v baptism_n to_o the_o be_v of_o all_o soul_n in_o the_o divine_a grace_n and_o favour_n and_o as_o necessary_a as_o birth_n be_v to_o the_o perfection_n of_o man_n in_o this_o world_n so_o necessary_a be_v baptism_n to_o come_v to_o the_o perfect_a state_n of_o glory_n unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v again_o of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n 3._o i●_n 3._o by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v that_o baptism_n be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v a_o outward_a rite_n or_o sign_n that_o cause_v grace_n in_o us._n sacrament_n baptism_n a_o sacrament_n we_o have_v a_o rite_n and_o outward_a sign_n in_o the_o water_n and_o we_o have_v the_o effect_n of_o grace_n in_o that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v obtain_v by_o it_o heretic_n that_o will_v confound_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v go_v about_o to_o take_v away_o our_o christendom_n from_o we_o affirm_v quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n that_o a_o man_n not_o bear_v of_o water_n may_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n pretend_v that_o child_n be_v sanctify_v by_o their_o parent_n faith_n and_o therefore_o will_v not_o baptize_v they_o but_o this_o as_o i_o have_v say_v be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n allege_v and_o in_o itself_o most_o absurd_a in_o that_o it_o make_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n to_o come_v to_o child_n not_o by_o grace_n but_o by_o inheritance_n from_o faithful_a parent_n and_o supernatural_a glory_n to_o be_v obtain_v by_o natural_a and_o corporal_a mean_n child_n be_v not_o absolute_o holy_a in_o that_o they_o come_v of_o holy_a parent_n good_a parent_n be_v indeed_o a_o mean_n to_o thou_o sanctification_n of_o their_o child_n by_o procure_v for_o they_o that_o which_o god_n have_v ordain_v for_o their_o sanctification_n but_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o parent_n can_v not_o merit_v grace_n for_o the_o child_n nor_o sanctify_v he_o this_o must_v be_v do_v by_o apply_v the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n to_o child_n in_o some_o sacrament_n and_o so_o the_o child_n of_o the_o jew_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v save_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o parent_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o they_o have_v the_o true_a faith_n apply_v unto_o their_o child_n those_o mean_n of_o sanctification_n which_o god_n then_o ordain_v for_o they_o but_o neither_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n nor_o of_o nature_n be_v child_n ever_o sanctify_v by_o only_o be_v bear_v of_o good_a parent_n but_o something_o be_v allwais_o do_v to_o they_o as_o circumcision_n or_o some_o other_o outward_a sign_n for_o their_o sanctification_n which_o although_o it_o be_v far_o inferior_a to_o our_o baptism_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_o require_v there_o be_v no_o proportion_n betwixt_o kindred_n in_o blood_n and_o the_o divine_a grace_n and_o glory_n s._n augustin_n do_v not_o believe_v 9_o aug._n l._n 3._o de_fw-la anima_fw-la &_o e●●s_fw-la origine_n 9_o do_v not_o say_v that_o child_n before_o baptism_n can_v have_v their_o original_a sin_n forgive_v they_o if_o thou_o will_v be_v a_o catholic_a of_o the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n the_o proper_a and_o particular_a effect_n of_o baptism_n be_v to_o make_v he_o that_o receive_v it_o to_o become_v a_o member_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o be_v admit_v into_o his_o church_n by_o it_o and_o to_o dispose_v and_o prepare_v he_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o sacrament_n after_o it_o the_o general_a effect_n of_o baptism_n which_o it_o have_v commune_v with_o all_o the_o sacrament_n be_v to_o give_v grace_n to_o the_o sanctification_n of_o soul_n and_o this_o it_o do_v after_o so_o full_a and_o plentiful_a a_o manner_n that_o it_o remit_v all_o sin_n whatsoever_o original_a and_o actual_a great_a and_o little_a and_o forgive_v all_o punishment_n due_a to_o it_o in_o the_o next_o world_n 6._o rom._n 6._o we_o be_v bury_v say_v the_o apostle_n together_o with_o he_o by_o baptism_n unto_o death_n that_o be_v to_o the_o death_n and_o destruction_n of_o sin_n and_o of_o all_o punishment_n after_o it_o we_o have_v a_o figure_n of_o this_o in_o naaman_n the_o leptose_a prince_n of_o syria_n who_o wash_v himself_o in_o the_o water_n of_o jordan_n 5._o reg._n 4_o 5._o as_o the_o prophet_n have_v praescribe_v to_o he_o he_o come_v forth_o so_o clean_o and_o perfect_o cure_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n say_v his_o flesh_n be_v restore_v as_o the_o flesh_n of_o a_o little_a child_n ezechiel_n prophesy_v of_o this_o say_v i_o will_v pour_v out_o
pleasure_n which_o we_o take_v in_o it_o the_o first_o evil_n of_o the_o loss_n of_o god_n be_v repair_v by_o our_o conversion_n to_o he_o in_o confession_n by_o which_o we_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o favour_n again_o but_o the_o punishment_n of_o our_o sense_n be_v not_o allwais_o quite_o take_v away_o but_o as_o our_o aversion_n from_o god_n and_o conversion_n to_o the_o creature_n for_o sensible_a pleasure_n be_v more_o earnest_a and_o intense_a than_o our_o conversion_n be_v to_o god_n again_o so_o it_o be_v fit_v that_o some_o sensible_a pain_n shall_v remain_v to_o be_v sustain_v these_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n and_o of_o purgatory_n of_o both_o which_o we_o will_v say_v something_o here_o as_o in_o their_o proper_a place_n if_o i_o say_v no_o more_o in_o proof_n of_o this_o doctrine_n but_o only_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o pastor_n of_o his_o communion_n deliver_v it_o i_o have_v in_o reason_n say_v enough_o for_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o true_a and_o lawful_a successor_n in_o s._n peter_n primacy_n as_o i_o have_v show_v he_o to_o be_v he_o and_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o communion_n have_v the_o lawful_a authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o be_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n in_o authority_n and_o be_v that_o we_o must_v always_o say_v i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n we_o must_v allwais_o believe_v and_o obey_v the_o succession_n of_o that_o authority_n but_o i_o will_v say_v something_o in_o particular_a of_o they_o that_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n teach_v of_o satisfaction_n be_v that_o although_o the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n to_o god_n may_v be_v so_o intense_a and_o perfect_a sometime_o that_o he_o may_v obtain_v a_o full_a remission_n of_o all_o punishment_n and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v new_o bear_v to_o god_n in_o baptism_n yet_o this_o do_v not_o allwais_o happen_v our_o conversion_n to_o god_n be_v not_o allwais_o so_o intense_a and_o perfect_a but_o that_o there_o may_v and_o common_o do_v remain_v some_o punishment_n to_o be_v suffer_v after_o it_o this_o we_o show_v first_o by_o holy_a scripture_n when_o the_o child_n of_o israel_n sin_v by_o murmur_v against_o god_n and_o their_o pastor_n moyset_v pray_v obtain_v the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n but_o yet_o say_v god_n all_o the_o man_n that_o have_v see_v my_o maicsty_n 14._o nu._n 14._o etc._n etc._n and_o have_v tempt_v i_o etc._n etc._n they_o shall_v not_o see_v the_o land_n for_o the_o which_o i_o swear_v to_o their_o father_n here_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v they_o yet_o it_o be_v punish_v afterward_o those_o that_o have_v sin_v never_o enter_v into_o the_o land_n of_o promise_n 20._o nu._n 20._o moses_n and_o aaron_n sin_v at_o the_o water_n of_o contradiction_n and_o when_o their_o sin_n be_v forgive_v there_o remain_v a_o penalty_n to_o be_v endure_v by_o they_o and_o they_o endure_v it_o not_o bring_v the_o people_n into_o the_o holy_a land_n david_n have_v sin_v by_o murder_n and_o adultery_n and_o nathan_n be_v send_v to_o reproove_v he_o and_o bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n 2.12_o reg._n 2.12_o he_o repent_v and_o deserve_v to_o hear_v from_o the_o prophet_n our_o lord_n have_v take_v away_o thy_o sin_n thou_o shall_v not_o die_v but_o his_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o it_o be_v not_o withstand_v punish_v with_o the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n the_o prophet_n declare_v the_o son_n which_o be_v bear_v to_o thou_o die_v shall_v die_v and_o for_o all_o king_n david_n earnest_n pray_v fast_v and_o lie_v on_o the_o ground_n he_o can_v not_o obtain_v the_o life_n of_o the_o child_n by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v that_o punishment_n of_o sin_n may_v remain_v to_o be_v suffer_v when_o the_o sin_n be_v forgive_v it_o be_v therefore_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n ancient_o as_o now_o it_o be_v to_o impose_v penalty_n upon_o sinner_n at_o their_o repentance_n as_o by_o ancient_a canon_n do_v appear_v 38._o ep_v 3._o &_o 14._o can_n 38._o s._n basil_n ep_v 3._o &_o 14._o can_n 38._o he_o that_o have_v commit_v adultery_n shall_v not_o communicate_v in_o the_o sacrament_n for_o fifteen_o year_n s._n augustine_n let_v we_o seek_v confession_n with_o a_o pure_a hart_n and_o perform_v the_o penance_n which_o be_v give_v by_o priest_n it_o be_v against_o reason_n that_o he_o that_o come_v to_o confession_n with_o many_o mortal_a sin_n shall_v think_v to_o have_v no_o more_o punishment_n than_o he_o that_o have_v but_o one_o only_a if_o they_o be_v dispose_v with_o equal_a devotion_n yet_o they_o be_v both_o alike_o if_o they_o have_v no_o more_o punihment_n but_o only_a to_o confess_v and_o that_o then_o all_o sin_n and_o punishment_n be_v take_v away_o sin_n therefore_o and_o punishment_n be_v only_o so_o far_o correlative_n that_o punishment_n allwais_o suppose_v sin_n to_o have_v be_v but_o do_v not_o require_v that_o there_o be_v then_o actual_o sin_n neither_o be_v it_o worth_a any_o thing_n that_o which_o haeretik_n object_n against_o this_o that_o christ_n satysfy_v for_o we_o therefore_o we_o need_v not_o to_o satisfy_v for_o ourselves_o no_o more_o than_o it_o be_v to_o say_v christ_n do_v good_a work_n for_o we_o therefore_o we_o need_v nor_o to_o do_v good_a work_n for_o ourselves_o our_o good_a work_n derogate_v not_o from_o the_o good_a work_n of_o christ_n nor_o our_o satisfaction_n from_o his_o satisfaction_n our_o good_a work_n have_v their_o value_n from_o he_o and_o so_o have_v our_o satisfaction_n but_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o he_o thus_o much_o for_o satisfaction_n and_o for_o the_o enjoin_v of_o penance_n after_o the_o remiffion_n of_o sin_n as_o for_o purgatory_n it_o follow_v hence_o that_o those_o who_o die_v with_o their_o sin_n forgive_v they_o but_o have_v not_o that_o intense_a sorrow_n and_o perfect_a repentance_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o remission_n of_o all_o punishment_n due_a to_o their_o sin_n must_v have_v their_o punishment_n in_o some_o place_n in_o the_o next_o world_n where_o they_o must_v be_v purge_v from_o that_o guilt_n of_o punishment_n as_o also_o of_o their_o lesser_a sin_n before_o that_o they_o can_v enter_v into_o heaven_n aërius_n be_v one_o of_o the_o first_o that_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o that_o which_o he_o get_v for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v record_v as_o a_o haeretike_n ever_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o to_o have_v his_o doctrine_n in_o thelist_n of_o those_o who_o s._n epiphanius_n haer_fw-mi 75._o and_o s._n augustine_n haer_fw-mi 83._o have_v brand_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o haeresy_n luther_n at_o first_o although_o he_o deny_v indulgence_n yet_o be_v so_o resolute_a in_o the_o maintain_n of_o purgatory_n that_o in_o his_o disputation_n with_o eckius_fw-la he_o will_v needs_o make_v public_a profession_n of_o it_o say_v i_o firm_o believe_v and_o dare_v bold_o say_v i_o know_v there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n whatsoever_o haeretik_n rail_v against_o it_o lip_n disp_n lip_n but_o have_v once_o fall_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o be_v constant_a to_o nothing_o but_o unconstancy_n and_o come_v in_o the_o end_n to_o deny_v purgatory_n also_o but_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v allwais_o acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o place_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o to_o be_v purge_v in_o who_o die_v in_o venial_a sin_n or_o have_v not_o make_v full_a satisfaction_n for_o their_o mortal_a which_o place_n therefore_o may_v apt_o be_v call_v purgatory_n that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o place_n it_o appear_v in_o all_o those_o sentence_n of_o scripture_n where_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v commend_v 4._o teh_fw-it 4._o for_o those_o who_o be_v in_o heaven_n or_o in_o hell_n be_v not_o to_o be_v pray_v for_o set_a thy_o bread_n and_o thy_o wine_n say_v holy_a toby_n upon_o the_o burial_n of_o a_o just_a man_n not_o as_o the_o gentile_n vain_o do_v to_o delight_v the_o dead_a with_o corporal_a viand_n but_o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a to_o pray_v for_o they_o hence_o say_v s._n chrysostome_n who_o live_v above_o twelve_o hundred_o year_n since_o come_v the_o custom_n of_o call_v together_o the_o poor_a to_o receive_v alm_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a thus_o do_v judas_n machabaeus_n make_v a_o gather_n and_o send_v a_o great_a sum_n of_o syluar_n to_o be_v bestow_v in_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a where_o upon_o the_o scripture_n make_v this_o inference_n 2.12_o mach._n 2.12_o it_o be_v therefore_o a_o holy_a and_o healthful_a cogitation_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a that_o they_o may_v be_v loose_v from_o sin_n and_o if_o any_o deny_v these_o scripture_n to_o be_v canonical_a because_o the_o jew_n deny_v they_o s._n det._n l._n 18._o de_fw-la ciu_o det._n augustine_n will_v
thou_o down_o instant_o into_o hell_n and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o want_v the_o mediation_n of_o christ_n of_o our_o b._n lady_n thy_o good_a angel_n thy_o patron_n and_o of_o all_o the_o saint_n and_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o church_n thou_o will_v not_o remain_v one_o moment_n in_o that_o state_n it_o be_v a_o humane_a thing_n say_v s._n gregory_n to_o err_v but_o diabolical_a to_o persevere_v in_o it_o if_o we_o fall_v into_o sin_n we_o do_v but_o like_a man_n if_o we_o rise_v again_o we_o do_v as_o the_o saint_n have_v do_v but_o if_o we_o persevere_v in_o sin_n we_o be_v like_o the_o devil_n who_o must_v remain_v in_o sin_n for_o ever_o of_o extreme-unction_n this_o sacrament_n have_v for_o its_o proper_a effect_n to_o give_v grace_n and_o strength_n against_o temptation_n at_o our_o death_n for_o the_o hope_n of_o our_o enemy_n be_v then_o at_o the_o last_o he_o strive_v all_o he_o can_v against_o us._n 12._o apoc._n 12._o the_o devil_n be_v descend_v to_o you_o have_v great_a wrath_n know_v that_o he_o have_v but_o a_o little_a time_n say_a the_o heavenly_a voice_n which_o s._n john_n hear_v some_o he_o tempt_v to_o presumption_n other_o to_o despair_n some_o by_o too_o much_o love_n to_o their_o friend_n and_o family_n some_o think_v of_o nothing_o but_o the_o riches_n which_o they_o leave_v some_o by_o too_o much_o desire_n of_o life_n that_o they_o will_v not_o apprehend_v nor_o prepare_v themselves_o for_o death_n and_o general_o as_o we_o draw_v near_o to_o our_o end_n we_o grow_v more_o subject_n to_o extremity_n of_o passion_n all_o which_o the_o devil_n know_v how_o to_o make_v use_n of_o to_o our_o hurt_n but_o his_o common_a temptation_n be_v to_o terrify_v sinner_n with_o grievous_a fear_n and_o affrightment_n at_o their_o sin_n past_a 4._o sap._n 4._o they_o shall_v come_v fearful_a in_o cogitation_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n on_o the_o contrary_n shall_v convince_v they_o say_v holy_a wisdom_n neither_o shall_v their_o natural_a courage_n and_o strength_n then_o avail_v they_o any_o thing_n though_o never_o so_o bold_a and_o brag_a in_o time_n of_o health_n great_a saint_n have_v show_v much_o fear_n at_o their_o death_n s._n hilarion_n who_o perfection_n s._n hilar._n vita_fw-la hilar._n hierome_n describe_v say_v that_o great_a concourse_n of_o bishop_n priest_n clergyman_n and_o monk_n seek_v to_o he_o the_o temptation_n of_o christian_n matron_n follow_v he_o multitude_n of_o the_o common_a people_n potentate_n and_o judge_n come_v to_o receive_v holy_a bread_n and_o oil_n of_o he_o and_o yet_o his_o mind_n continue_v fix_v on_o solitude_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o when_o he_o come_v to_o die_v he_o be_v oppress_v with_o such_o a_o fear_n and_o horror_n of_o death_n that_o to_o encourage_v his_o soul_n he_o say_v go_v forth_o what_o do_v thou_o fear_v go_v forth_o my_o soul_n what_o do_v thou_o doubt_v of_o thou_o have_v serve_v christ_n now_o almost_o seventy_o year_n and_o do_v thou_o fear_v death_n if_o saint_n at_o their_o death_n have_v be_v thus_o terrify_v what_o may_v they_o expect_v who_o have_v commit_v many_o sin_n and_o perhaps_o but_o late_o repent_v for_o they_o and_o perhaps_o but_o slight_o and_o have_v but_o few_o good_a work_n then_o for_o their_o comfort_n therefore_o our_o saviour_n have_v provide_v this_o sacrament_n as_o a_o armour_n for_o we_o against_o that_o time_n s._n james_n 5._o jam._n 5._o be_v any_o man_n sick_a among_o you_o let_v he_o bring_v in_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n and_o let_v they_o pray_v over_o he_o anoil_v he_o with_o oil_n in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n shall_v save_v the_o sick_a and_o our_o lord_n shall_v lift_v he_o up_o and_o if_o he_o be_v in_o sin_n they_o shall_v be_v remit_v he_o by_o which_o word_n we_o have_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n well_o prove_v and_o etreme_a unction_n declare_v to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n that_o be_v a_o outward_a sign_n that_o sanctify_v us._n there_o be_v a_o outward_a sign_n in_o the_o external_a rite_n of_o anoil_v and_o in_o the_o form_n of_o word_n signify_v by_o prayer_n and_o that_o this_o outward_a sign_n cause_v grace_n unto_o sanctification_n the_o word_n follow_v do_v declare_v in_o that_o sin_n be_v remit_v which_o can_v not_o be_v but_o by_o grace_n be_v receive_v and_o it_o follow_v hence_o that_o christ_n institute_v it_o for_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o institute_v such_o sign_n neither_o can_v s._n james_n have_v promise_v remission_n of_o sin_n by_o it_o if_o christ_n have_v not_o institute_v it_o test_n luth._o praef._n ad_fw-la now_o test_n and_o give_v it_o that_o power_n it_o be_v true_a luther_n reject_v this_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n deny_v it_o to_o be_v canonical_a and_o call_v it_o a_o epistle_n of_o straw_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n have_v declare_v it_o for_o canonical_a and_o if_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o luther_n we_o will_v put_v caluin_n into_o the_o balance_n against_o he_o a_o author_n at_o least_o of_o equal_a gravity_n with_o he_o 17._o caluin_n l._n 3._o instit._fw-la c._n 17._o and_o caluin_n hold_v it_o for_o canonical_a s._n bernard_n in_o vita_fw-la malach._n relate_v of_o s._n malachy_n that_o he_o assist_v with_o a_o sick_a woman_n and_o not_o think_v she_o to_o be_v in_o such_o danger_n as_o to_o require_v the_o sacrament_n of_o extreme-vnction_n depart_v from_o she_o without_o minister_a it_o but_o she_o die_v in_o his_o absence_n he_o return_v again_o full_a of_o sorrow_n and_o pity_v that_o she_o shall_v want_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o he_o fall_v to_o his_o prayer_n restore_v she_o to_o life_n again_o and_o then_o say_v s._n bern_n he_o anoiled_a her_z know_v that_o by_o this_o sacrament_n sin_n be_v remit_v and_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o faith_n save_v the_o sick_a the_o holy_a oil_n be_v then_o apply_v as_o a_o spiritual_a salve_n to_o the_o sense_n because_o by_o occasion_n of_o our_o sense_n we_o commit_v sin_n but_o beside_o the_o spiritual_a remedy_n which_o our_o soul_n gain_v by_o it_o it_o have_v also_o a_o corporal_a effect_n of_o give_v health_n to_o the_o body_n as_o the_o apostle_n declare_v the_o sick_a be_v save_v and_o alleviate_v by_o it_o by_o reason_n of_o which_o effect_n this_o sacrament_n be_v not_o give_v in_o danger_n of_o death_n by_o war_n or_o otherwise_o but_o only_o by_o sickness_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n be_v that_o which_o priest_n deacon_n subdeacons_n and_o other_o receive_v when_o they_o be_v ordain_v by_o which_o they_o receive_v spiritual_a power_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n 1.4_o tim._n 1.4_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrament_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o timothy_n neglect_v not_o the_o grace_n which_o be_v give_v thou_o by_o prophecy_n with_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priesthood_n by_o this_o it_o have_v all_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n and_o the_o word_n that_o be_v say_v which_o be_v there_o signify_v by_o prophecy_n be_v a_o external_a sign_n tim._n amb._n in_o tim._n by_o which_o grace_n in_o give_v upon_o which_o word_n s._n ambrose_n say_v that_o timothy_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o the_o hand_n of_o priesthood_n be_v design_v to_o the_o work_n ard_n receive_v authority_n that_o he_o dare_v offer_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n in_o our_o lord_n steed_n the_o same_o power_n be_v express_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n when_o heordain_v priest_n say_v receive_v thou_o authority_n to_o offer_v for_o the_o live_n and_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o name_n of_o our_o lord_n to_o offer_v there_o be_v to_o offer_v sacrifice_n as_o s._n ambrose_n also_o express_v it_o and_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n be_v the_o most_o proper_a office_n of_o priest_n priest_n and_o sacrifice_n go_v allwais_o together_o so_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o priest_n but_o he_o must_v have_v power_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n the_o proper_a and_o peculiar_a effect_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v to_o give_v grace_n to_o exercise_v worthy_o ecclesiastical_a function_n which_o power_n and_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v most_o high_a and_o eminent_a above_o all_o dignity_n for_o what_o can_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o dignity_n of_o christian_n priest_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o power_n of_o order_n by_o which_o they_o consecrate_v the_o most_o blesed_a host_n and_o also_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n by_o which_o they_o remit_v sin_n neither_o of_o which_o be_v within_o the_o angel_n power_n and_o therefore_o priesthood_n be_v not_o obtain_v in_o
and_o in_o another_o place_n slack_v not_o to_o be_v convert_v to_o our_o lord_n and_o differre_fw-la not_o from_o day_n to_o day_n 5._o eccl._n 5._o for_o his_o wrath_n shall_v come_v sudden_o and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o vengeance_n he_o will_v destroy_v thou_o let_v bold_a praesumptuous_a man_n remember_v these_o word_n and_o learn_v to_o fear_v god_n dear_a reader_n whosoever_o thou_o be_v as_o thou_o have_v a_o soul_n which_o must_v last_v for_o ever_o apply_v this_o book_n to_o the_o good_a of_o thy_o soul_n so_o as_o shall_v most_o concern_v it_o for_o a_o happy_a eternity_n i_o excuse_v no_o fault_n my_o goodwill_n shall_v mend_v all_o god_n can_v and_o i_o hope_v will_v honour_v himself_o even_o in_o my_o fault_n combine_v thou_o with_o i_o that_o we_o may_v honour_v he_o for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n i_o submit_v all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o this_o book_n and_o all_o whatsoever_o i_o shall_v sa●●r_o think_v as_o long_o as_o i_o live_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n a_o sum_n of_o the_o christian_a doctrine_n expound_v in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n qvaestion_n what_o obligation_n have_v christian_n to_o learn●_n the_o christian_a doctrine_n answer_n every_o christian_a be_v bind_v under_o a_o mortal_a sin_n to_o know_v the_o chief_a point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 7._o q._n what_o be_v faith_n a._n faith_n be_v a_o supernatural_a light_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v and_o firm_o adhare_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n 11._o q._n make_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros._n a._n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a g●ost_n amen_n 49._o q._n what_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n a._n the_o sign_n of_o the_o cr●●_n be_v a_o profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 51._o q._n how_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n a_o profession_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n 51_o a._n because_o in_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n we_o profess_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o of_o the_o incarnation_n which_o be_v the_o two_o chief_a mystery_n of_o the_o ch●stian_a faith_n 51_o q._n what_o be_v the_o b._n trinity_n a._n the_o b._n trinity_n be_v god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n one_o and_o the_o same_o god_n in_o three_o distinct_a person_n 51_o q._n what_o mean_v you_o by_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n a._n we_o mean_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_v that_o be_v become_v man_n to_o redeem_v us._n 52_o q._n say_v the_o creed_n a._n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_v dead_a and_o bury_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o all_o both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_a curch_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n life_n everlasting_a amen_o 76._o q_o who_o be_v christ_n a._n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n incarnate_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n our_o redeemer_n judge_n and_o glorifyer_n 109._o q._n what_o do_v we_o get_v by_o christ_n redeem_v we_o a._n we_o get_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o the_o acceptance_n of_o our_o good_a work_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n apply_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n 156._o q._n what_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n a._n the_o catholic_a church_n be_v the_o congregation_n of_o all_o faithful_a people_n and_o pastor_n unite_v together_o as_o a_o body_n with_o its_o head_n 176._o q._n give_v i_o a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o true_a and_o all_o false_a church_n a._n the_o true_a church_n keep_v allwais_o in_o union_n and_o obedience_n to_o its_o head_n and_o pastor_n all_o false_a church_n begin_v in_o dissension_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o head_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n 214._o q._n say_v the_o seven_o sacrament_n a._n baptism_n confirmation_n eucharist_n penance_n extreme_a unction_n holy_a order_n matrimony_n 281._o q_o what_o be_v a_o sacrament_n a._n a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o outward_a sign_n which_o cause_v grace_n in_o us._n 266._o q._n what_o be_v grace_n a_o grace_n be_v a_o supernatural_a gift_n which_o make_v we_o grateful_a and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n 268._o q._n what_o be_v the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n a._n the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n be_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 298._o q._n it_o shere_v any_o bread_n or_o wine_n in_o the_o eucharist_n a._n no_n it_o seem_v but_o so_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v convert_v at_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n into_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n 305._o q._n what_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n a._n the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v that_o by_o which_o we_o receive_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n in_o confession_n 322._o q._n say_v the_o ten_o commandment_n a._n thou_o shall_v not_o have_v strange_a god_n before_o i_o thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a remember_v thou_o keep_v holy_a the_o sabaoth_a day_n honour_n thy_o father_n and_o mother_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v thou_o shall_v not_o commit_v adultery_n thou_o shall_v not_o bear_v false_a witness_n against_o thy_o neighbour_n thou_o shall_v not_o desire_v thy_o neighbour_n wife_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n good_n 378_o q._n say_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la a._n our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n hallow_a b●_n thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v thy_o will_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n and_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o we_o forgive_v they_o their_o trespass_n against_o us._n and_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n but_o deliver_v we_o from_o evil_a amen_o 449._o q._n say_v the_o hail_n mary_n a._n haile_o marry_o full_a of_o grace_n our_o lord_n be_v with_o thou_o bless_a be_v thou_o among_o woman_n bless_a be_v the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o womb_n jesus_n holy_a mary_n mother_n of_o god_n pray_v for_o we_o sinner_n now_o and_o in_o the_o hour_n of_o of_o our_o death_n amen_n 509._o q._n what_o be_v the_o mass_n a._n the_o mass_n be_v the_o continual_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n in_o which_o his_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n be_v offer_v under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n 576._o q._n say_v the_o five_o chief_a precept_n of_o the_o church_n a._n to_o fast_o fast_v day_n to_o keep_v holy_a day_n to_o confess_v our_o sin_n to_o our_o ordinary_a pastor_n or_o to_o another_o with_o his_o leave_n at_o least_o once_o a_o year_n to_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n at_o easter_n time_n to_o pay_v tithe_n 640._o q._n how_o do_v the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v a._n the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v under_o a_o mortal_a sin_n 641._o q._n what_o be_v sin_n a._n sin_n be_v that_o by_o which_o we_o depart_v from_o the_o divine_a law_n and_o be_v separate_v from_o god_n 673._o q._n ho_o many_o kind_n of_o sin_n be_v there_o a._n there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o sin_n original_a and_o actual_a sin_n 715._o q._n what_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o original_a and_o actual_a sin_n a._n original_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v in_o actual_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o ●e_v commit_v 615._o q._n how_o many_o kind_n of_o sin_n do_v we_o commit_v a._n we_o committee_n two_o kind_n of_o sin_n mortal_a sin_n and_o venial_a sin_n 717_o q._n what_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o mortal_n and_o venial_a sin_n a._n mortal_a sin_n quite_o deprive_v we_o of_o god_n grace_n venial_a sin_n only_o lessen_v and_o deminish_v the_o fervour_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o us._n 717._o the_o first_o discourse_n of_o the_o education_n and_o instruction_n of_o child_n and_o of_o the_o obligation_n which_o all_o have_v to_o learn_v the_o christian_n doctrine_n i_o intend_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o two_o thing_n first_o unto_o all_o those_o who_o have_v charge_n over_o child_n and_o especial_o to_o parent_n to_o commend_v unto_o they_o the_o care_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v of_o their_o good_a education_n and_o instruction_n second_o to_o declare_v unto_o all_o the_o
the_o mysterious_a union_n of_o our_o nature_n unto_o god_n in_o christ_n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v well_o say_v we_o be_v make_v the_o consort_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n for_o as_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v make_v consort_n by_o holy_a marriage_n 1._o petr_n 2_o 1._o their_o mind_n body_n and_o temporal_a riches_n become_v common_a and_o as_o it_o be_v all_o one_o betwixt_o they_o so_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unite_n man_v nature_n unto_o he_o they_o be_v than_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n and_o man_n be_v make_v consort_n to_o the_o divine_a nature_n and_o endow_v withal_o the_o title_n and_o riches_n of_o god_n that_o according_a to_o s._n ath●nasius_n his_o creed_n as_o man_n consist_v of_o a_o spiritual_a and_o corporal_a nature_n so_o that_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v constitute_v a_o entire_a man_n so_o do_v christ_n consist_v of_o two_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a there_o be_v no_o good_a thing_n which_o we_o can_v desire_v but_o we_o have_v it_o in_o this_o mystery_n for_o our_o soul_n be_v sanctify_v by_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n they_o be_v make_v also_o the_o consort_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n by_o grace_n and_o god_n come_v to_o they_o as_o to_o his_o spouse_n bring_v with_o he_o all_o good_a thing_n to_o they_o and_o in_o the_o end_n will_v carry_v they_o into_o his_o glorious_a kingdom_n these_o two_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o and_o of_o the_o incarnation_n be_v as_o i_o have_v say_v the_o two_o chief_a mystery_n of_o the_o christian_n faith_n proper_a only_o to_o christian_n and_o destinguish_v they_o from_o all_o other_o people_n and_o therefore_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n which_o contain_v they_o be_v use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o a_o brief_a and_o ready_a profession_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n that_o as_o nation_n commonwealth_n and_o noble_a family_n have_v their_o arm_n and_o cognisant_n by_o which_o they_o be_v know_v and_o destinguish_v and_o in_o which_o they_o honour_v themselves_o so_o christian_n have_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n as_o their_o proper_a arm_n by_o which_o they_o be_v know_v and_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o child_n and_o disciple_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o glory_n in_o it_o and_o to_o think_v it_o our_o chief_a honour_n and_o security_n to_o have_v the_o arm_n of_o such_o a_o king_n and_o father_n have_v declare_v the_o sense_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o figne_n of_o the_o cros_n now_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o worship_n which_o good_a christian_n ought_v to_o give_v to_o the_o cros_n of_o christ_n by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v it_o do_v easy_o appear_v that_o all_o christian_n have_v reason_n to_o honour_v the_o cros._n infidel_n jew_n and_o turk_n have_v allwais_o oppose_v the_o honour_n of_o it_o pull_v down_o break_n and_o deface_v of_o cross_n pretend_v that_o which_o be_v true_a indeed_o that_o the_o dishonour_n which_o they_o do_v to_o the_o cros_n be_v do_v to_o christ_n who_o enemy_n they_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v heretic_n agree_v with_o infidel_n jew_n and_o turk_n when_o they_o pull_v down_o chross_n and_o yet_o will_n pretend_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o friend_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o faithful_a servant_n have_v wilful_o blind_v themselves_o not_o to_o see_v that_o which_o the_o other_o by_o nature_n see_v that_o the_o iniury_n which_o be_v do_v unto_o the_o cros_n fall_v voon_o christ_n for_o who_o sake_n we_o honour_v it_o heretic_n as_o you_o see_v agree_v here_o in_o their_o action_n with_o infidel_n jew_n and_o turk_n and_o differ_v only_o in_o pretence_n from_o they_o and_o natural_a reason_n show_v that_o infidel_n jew_n and_o turk_n say_v true_o in_o that_o which_o they_o pretend_v and_o that_o such_o haeretik_n have_v both_o evil_a action_n and_o of_o alse_a pretence_n also_o and_o so_o they_o have_v in_o this_o less_o verity_n than_o the_o former_a but_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v never_o consent_v to_o the_o iniury_n of_o the_o cros_n because_o we_o know_v that_o such_o iniury_n fall_v upon_o christ_n crucyfy_v and_o therefore_o as_o fast_o as_o they_o pull_v down_o cross_n we_o labour_v to_o set_v they_o up_o and_o as_o they_o strive_v to_o dishonour_v the_o cros_n we_o strive_v against_o they_o to_o honour_v it_o we_o bless_v ourselves_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n bow_v to_o cross_n kiss_v and_o reverence_v they_o we_o institute_v holy_a day_n in_o honour_n of_o it_o and_o in_o all_o thing_n we_o glory_v in_o the_o cros_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o chief_a instrument_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o therefore_o we_o think_v it_o a_o sit_v sign_n to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o it_o and_o that_o we_o may_v apt_o understande_v his_o passion_n by_o it_o thus_o have_v the_o church_n of_o god_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o ever_o since_o use_v the_o cros_n to_o signify_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o honour_v it_o in_o that_o signification_n thus_o do_v s._n 3._o phil._n 3._o paul_n understande_v by_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o cros_n the_o enemy_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o thus_o do_v infidel_n jew_n and_o turk_n think_v that_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v enemy_n of_o cross_n they_o show_v themselves_o to_o be_v enemy_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o haeretik_n who_o profess_v themselves_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n shall_v by_o reason_n conceive_v as_o without_o doubt_n they_o do_v a_o fear_n and_o horror_n when_o they_o abuse_v cross_n and_o can_v by_o reason_v but_o think_v themselves_o enemy_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n when_o reason_n tell_v they_o the_o relation_n which_o cross_n have_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o we_o right_o honour_v and_o worship_v they_o what_o do_v s._n paul_n but_o that_o which_o we_o do_v when_o he_o say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_v save_v in_o the_o cros_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 6._o gal_n 6._o do_v not_o he_o use_v here_o the_o cros_n to_o signify_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o honour_n it_o in_o that_o signification_n in_o the_o very_a same_o sense_n do_v the_o catholic_a church_n use_v it_o and_o do_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o s._n paul_n here_o do_v and_o we_o may_v very_o well_o make_v this_o argument_n s._n paul_n use_v the_o cros_n to_o signify_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n and_o then_o honour_v it_o in_o that_o signification_n therefore_o we_o may_v lawful_o do_v so_o he_o glory_v inward_o in_o his_o hart_n in_o the_o cros_n and_o his_o tongue_n and_o lip_n move_v corporal_o in_o honour_n of_o it_o mean_v still_o to_o honour_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n by_o it_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o good_a catholic_n do_v honour_v with_o their_o heart_n and_o their_o whole_a body_n move_v in_o honour_n of_o the_o cros_n understand_v by_o it_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n lo._n aug._n tract_n 43._o in_o lo._n s._n augustine_n say_v that_o christ_n choose_v the_o death_n of_o the_o cros_n have_v fix_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n in_o our_o forehead_n that_o we_o may_v say_v god_n forbid_v that_o i_o shall_v glory_v save_v in_o the_o cros_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o cros_n be_v the_o chief_a instrument_n and_o weapon_n with_o which_o our_o saviour_n fight_v and_o obtain_v that_o glorious_a victory_n by_o which_o he_o save_v we_o and_o therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o glory_n in_o it_o and_o to_o keep_v it_o in_o great_a reverence_n david_n fight_v for_o the_o people_n of_o god_n overcome_v the_o philistaean_a giant_n and_o with_o a_o sword_n cut_v of_o his_o head_n and_o it_o please_v god_n that_o his_o sword_n shall_v afterward_o be_v honour_v by_o the_o people_n be_v careful_o leap_v up_o and_o keep_v in_o the_o temple_n as_o a_o memorial_n of_o their_o champion_n victory_n this_o be_v very_o proper_a to_o our_o purpose_n david_n may_v represent_v christ_n who_o be_v our_o champion_n but_o infinite_o more_o glorious_a and_o therefore_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v honour_v by_o us._n but_o as_o the_o sword_n be_v to_o david_n so_o be_v the_o cros_n in_o respect_n of_o christ_n the_o instrument_n of_o his_o victory_n and_o if_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o have_v david_n honour_v afterward_o in_o his_o sword_n because_o the_o honour_n of_o it_o redound_v to_o he_o shall_v not_o we_o honour_n christ_n in_o his_o cros_n and_o think_v that_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o cros_n redound_v unto_o christ_n if_o some_o evil_a mind_a man_n have_v enter_v into_o the_o temple_n and_o take_v down_o king_n david_n sword_n from_o behind_o the_o ephod_n have_v abuse_v and_o break_v it_o will_v not_o this_o man_n have_v be_v just_a y_o thought_n to_o have_v dishonour_v king_n david_n himself_o and_o
sign_n of_o the_o cros_n upon_o her_o breast_n and_o that_o so_o she_o shall_v be_v cure_v she_o do_v so_o and_o be_v restore_v to_o perfect_a health_n this_o happen_v in_o s._n augustine_n time_n in_o the_o city_n in_o which_o he_o live_v and_o himself_o have_v have_v the_o examine_n of_o it_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v publish_v we_o have_v then_o s._n paul_n and_o those_o that_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n honour_v the_o cros_n as_o we_o now_o do_v and_o we_o may_v see_v by_o the_o writing_n of_o their_o successor_n the_o saint_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o power_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n and_o what_o devotion_n be_v then_o bear_v to_o it_o he_o who_o all_o this_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o move_v but_o shall_v still_o oppose_v this_o bless_a sign_n show_v a_o intolerable_a obstinacy_n in_o himself_o and_o that_o he_o need_v rather_o some_o mean_n to_o mollify_v his_o hart_n and_o to_o move_v his_o will_n than_o any_o argument_n to_o convince_v his_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o let_v he_o have_v recourse_n unto_o god_n by_o prayer_n as_o i_o show_v in_o the_o last_o title_n of_o the_o former_a discourse_n that_o he_o will_v enlighten_v and_o inspire_v he_o to_o the_o truth_n for_o he_o may_v deceive_v himself_o but_o god_n can_v not_o deceive_v he_o i_o have_v now_o no_o more_o to_o say_v of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros._n you_o have_v see_v first_o how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v make_v second_o what_o mystery_n be_v contain_v in_o it_o to_o wit_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n and_o of_o the_o incarnation_n three_o what_o reverence_n we_o ought_v to_o bear_v unto_o it_o let_v we_o confess_v the_o greatness_n of_o god_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o fear_v he_o let_v we_o acknowledge_v his_o love_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n and_o love_v he_o and_o let_v we_o honour_v that_o holy_a sign_n by_o which_o those_o mystery_n be_v signify_v the_o cros_n be_v the_o sword_n of_o christ_n the_o glory_n of_o christian_n the_o terror_n of_o devil_n our_o arm_n and_o armour_n against_o all_o danger_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n it_o be_v say_v s._n augustine_n the_o chair_n in_o which_o our_o master_n sit_v to_o teach_v us._n 3._o aug._n tract_n 119._o in_o lo._n to_o 3_o 1._o ad_fw-la tim._n 3._o he_o teach_v we_o from_o thence_o a_o lesson_n of_o all_o virtue_n of_o perfect_a charity_n towards_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n of_o humility_n patience_n meekness_n fortitude_n poverty_n and_o of_o perfect_a resignation_n with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n in_o all_o thing_n if_o thou_o feel_v thyself_o cold_a in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n negligent_a in_o frequent_v the_o sacrament_n in_o come_v to_o mass_n etc._n etc._n and_o have_v but_o little_a feel_n of_o goodness_n nor_o care_n of_o god_n service_n in_o thou_o behold_v christ_n upon_o the_o cros_n hear_v he_o how_o he_o call_v upon_o thou_o to_o see_v he_o pain_n unto_o death_n for_o the_o love_n of_o thy_o soul_n if_o thou_o be_v offend_v at_o thy_o enemy_n and_o do_v not_o forgive_v he_o behold_v thy_o master_n on_o thou_o cros_n and_o hear_v he_o not_o only_a forgive_n but_o excuse_v and_o pray_v for_o his_o enemy_n if_o thou_o feel_v in_o thyself_o a_o desire_n of_o praise_n worldly_a glory_n and_o preferment_n behold_v the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o his_o passion_n become_v the_o abject_a of_o man_n that_o a_o notorious_a condemn_a thief_n be_v prefer_v before_o he_o if_o by_o sickness_n sore_n and_o other_o like_a afflition_n thou_o be_v move_v to_o impatience_n see_v he_o in_o his_o passion_n how_o he_o gius_fw-la his_o blessed_a head_n his_o face_n his_o hand_n his_o foot_n and_o his_o whole_a body_n as_o a_o lamb_n to_o his_o enemy_n to_o be_v bind_v to_o be_v beat_v to_o be_v nail_v stab_v cut_v and_o wound_v as_o they_o will_v themselves_o see_v the_o blood_n run_v out_o of_o his_o crown_a head_n by_o drop_n after_o drop_n where_o the_o thorn_n pierce_v it_o and_o out_o of_o his_o hand_n and_o foot_n and_o wound_a side_n not_o by_o drop_n but_o by_o a_o continual_a course_n until_o they_o be_v leave_v dry_a what_o do_v he_o say_v to_o those_o that_o torment_v he_o and_o in_o his_o torment_n upbraid_v he_o with_o false_a crime_n all_o that_o time_n he_o answer_v not_o a_o word_n in_o his_o own_o behalf_n but_o with_o silence_n go_v on_o stand_v still_o or_o lay_v down_o as_o they_o will_v have_v he_o that_o carry_v he_o from_o place_n to_o place_n and_o from_o one_o pain_n to_o another_o he_o never_o open_v his_o mouth_n to_o desire_v any_o ease_n or_o to_o entreat_v for_o any_o thing_n to_o teach_v thou_o meekness_n he_o defend_v innocency_n against_o the_o power_n of_o king_n priest_n and_o precedent_n to_o teach_v thou_o fortitude_n in_o god_n cause_n he_o become_v naked_a to_o teach_v thou_o poverty_n he_o take_v the_o cup_n of_o his_o passion_n willing_o from_o the_o angel_n and_o drink_v it_o up_o to_o the_o bottom_n more_o than_o ne_v need_v for_o the_o health_n of_o mankind_n because_o it_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o his_o divine_a will_n that_o he_o shall_v do_v so_o learn_v thou_o to_o resign_v thy_o will_n to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v content_v in_o all_o occasion_n as_o he_o shall_v dispose_v of_o thou_o final_o there_o be_v neither_o writing_n nor_o preach_v nor_o any_o word_n whatsoever_o that_o imprint_v so_o much_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o our_o heart_n nor_o move_v so_o efficacious_o to_o all_o virtue_n no_o not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o nor_o any_o remedy_n so_o good_a against_o all_o kind_n of_o sin_n as_o the_o meditation_n of_o christ_n passion_n which_o be_v read_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros._n rom._n l._n 6._o in_o ep._n ad_fw-la rom._n origen_n ask_v by_o what_o mean_v we_o shall_v perform_v the_o apostle_n word_n that_o sin_n reign_v not_o in_o we_o 6._o rom._n 6._o answer_v where_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v carry_v there_o sin_n can_v not_o reign_v for_o say_v he_o the_o cros_n of_o christ_n have_v such_o power_n that_o if_o we_o bear_v it_o before_o our_o eye_n and_o keep_v it_o in_o our_o mind_n no_o concupiscence_n no_o lust_n no_o anger_n no_o envy_n can_v overcome_v we_o 2._o he●5_n ●5_z in_o m●t._n to_o 2._o the_o whole_a army_n of_o sin_n be_v put_v to_o slight_a s._n chrysostome_n let_v they_o attend_v that_o be_v ashamed_a of_o the_o cros_n of_o christ_n passion_n for_o if_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n s._n peter_n be_v call_v satan_n when_o he_o have_v not_o learn_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o cros_n 16._o mat._n 16._o because_o he_o say_v lord_n be_v it_o far_o from_o thou_o this_o shall_v not_o be_v unto_o thou_o how_o shall_v they_o be_v pardon_v that_o dare_v to_o deny_v the_o cros_n now_o when_o it_o be_v preach_v all_o over_o let_v none_o be_v ashamed_a of_o these_o sign_n of_o our_o salvation_n but_o let_v we_o carry_v the_o cros_n of_o christ_n about_o we_o as_o a_o joyful_a crown_n for_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v conduce_v to_o salvation_n be_v accomplish_v in_o it_o when_o we_o be_v regenerate_v the_o cros_n be_v present_a when_o we_o be_v feed_v with_o the_o most_o sacred_a soode_n when_o we_o be_v place_v in_o the_o order_n of_o consecrate_v all_o over_o and_o at_o all_o time_n that_o sign_n of_o victory_n be_v use_v wherefore_o let_v we_o have_v that_o sign_n in_o our_o house_n in_o our_o window_n on_o our_o forehead_n and_o in_o our_o mind_n with_o much_o devotion_n it_o be_v the_o sign_n of_o our_o salvation_n of_o our_o universal_a liberty_n of_o the_o mildness_n and_o humility_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o therefore_o thou_o sign_a thyself_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n think_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o cros_n and_o extinguish_v the_o fire_n of_o wrath_n and_o other_o passion_n in_o thou_o when_o thou_o sign_a thyself_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n arm_v thy_o face_n with_o confidence_n and_o thy_o mind_n with_o the_o thought_n of_o freedom_n for_o paul_n exhort_v to_o true_a freedom_n call_v we_o to_o the_o memory_n of_o the_o cros_n say_v you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o great_a price_n 1.6_o cor._n 1.6_o this_o be_v the_o price_n of_o the_o cros._n we_o must_v not_o only_o make_v it_o with_o our_o singar_n on_o the_o body_n but_o with_o confidence_n on_o our_o soul_n and_o if_o so_o thou_o make_v it_o none_o of_o the_o wicked_a devil_n will_v dare_v to_o encounter_v thou_o when_o he_o sece_v the_o speere_n of_o his_o mortal_a wound_n for_o if_o we_o be_v afraid_a to_o behold_v the_o place_n where_o condemn_a person_n be_v execute_v what_o do_v thou_o
he_o come_v to_o year_n of_o understanding_n which_o he_o profess_v in_o baptism_n by_o the_o month_n of_o those_o that_o then_o carry_v he_o and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o christian_n shall_v use_v it_o as_o a_o look_a glass_n morning_n and_o night_n to_o examine_v themselves_o in_o their_o faith_n by_o it_o 1._o l_o 1_o dosymb_n 1._o by_o all_o which_o it_o do_v appear_v first_o that_o the_o creed_n be_v of_o divine_a authority_n as_o make_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n from_o they_o to_o posterity_n as_o the_o write_a word_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n to_o be_v believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n second_o out_o of_o s_o ambrose_n and_o s._n augustine_n that_o it_o be_v a_o kea_fw-mi and_o a_o look_a glass_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v for_o we_o we_o ought_v with_o great_a reverence_n to_o keep_v it_o and_o to_o use_v it_o as_o such_o often_o frequent_v it_o to_o lock_v up_o the_o infernal_a darkness_n from_o we_o and_o to_o open_v the_o divine_a light_n unto_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o examine_v ourselves_o in_o faith_n by_o it_o as_o by_o a_o look_a glass_n that_o so_o we_o may_v allwais_o keep_v constant_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n quest_n say_v the_o creed_n answ_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n who_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_a dead_a and_o bury_v he_o descend_v into_o hell_n the_o three_o day_n he_o arise_v again_o from_o death_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o all_o both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a i_o believe_v in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n the_o communion_n of_o saint_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n life_n everlasting_a amen_n the_o first_o article_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n in_o this_o article_n the_o apostle_n profess_v their_o belief_n in_o the_o first_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n in_o the_o follow_a article_n they_o profess_v the_o second_o person_n and_o the_o three_o but_o we_o be_v not_o here_o to_o understande_v that_o god_n the_o father_n without_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n make_v the_o world_n for_o every_o external_a work_n which_o god_n do_v be_v do_v by_o all_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n son_n and_o holy_a ghost_n have_v all_o the_o same_o undivided_a power_n all_o equal_o concur_v to_o the_o make_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o the_o father_n be_v name_v first_o and_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v here_o particular_o attribute_v to_o he_o because_o he_o be_v the_o first_o person_n from_o who_o the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eternal_o proceed_v god_n be_v right_o term_v a_o father_n to_o signify_v his_o power_n love_n and_o care_n over_o us._n father_n god_n a_o father_n for_o as_o father_n begin_v the_o generation_n that_o come_v of_o they_o and_o govern_v their_o child_n and_o provide_v for_o they_o so_o be_v god_n the_o beginner_n of_o this_o world_n he_o govern_v it_o with_o his_o power_n and_o by_o his_o providence_n conserve_v it_o 32._o deut._n 32._o be_v not_o he_o thy_o father_n that_o have_v possess_v thou_o and_o make_v and_o create_v thou_o by_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v understand_v all_o creature_n heavenly_a and_o earthly_a that_o be_v both_o spiritual_a and_o corporal_a creature_n and_o in_o this_o the_o power_n of_o god_n be_v express_v by_o his_o external_a work_n so_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o distinguish_v he_o as_o the_o supreme_a power_n and_o to_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n of_o our_o duty_n to_o he_o and_o dependence_n of_o he_o as_o give_v we_o our_o be_v and_o still_o conserve_n we_o in_o the_o be_v which_o we_o have_v and_o which_o all_o creature_n shall_v present_o and_o in_o a_o instant_n loose_a if_o he_o shall_v withdraw_v his_o divine_a help_n from_o they_o and_o there_o will_v be_v no_o creature_n at_o all_o but_o as_o there_o be_v once_o nothing_o but_o god_n god_n be_v the_o most_o perfect_a of_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o a_o spirit_n all_o over_o by_o his_o power_n and_o his_o power_n be_v himself_o he_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o any_o place_n now_o no_o more_o than_o he_o be_v before_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o be_v all_o way_n the_o same_o power_n the_o same_o goodness_n and_o those_o infinite_a he_o ever_o have_v a_o decree_n to_o create_v the_o world_n and_o that_o eternal_a decree_n he_o perform_v in_o time_n make_v the_o angel_n only_a spirit_n man_n both_o spiritual_a in_o their_o soul_n and_o corporal_a in_o their_o body_n and_o other_o creature_n as_o we_o see_v only_o corporal_a he_o make_v heaven_n a_o place_n of_o glory_n for_o the_o good_a and_o hell_n a_o place_n of_o punishment_n for_o the_o wicked_a he_o desire_v the_o salvation_n of_o all_o and_o give_v sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n to_o all_o that_o be_v the_o end_n for_o which_o he_o make_v us._n in_o this_o article_n we_o do_v not_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n maker_n etc._n etc._n but_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o maker_n etc._n etc._n in_o which_o we_o have_v two_o thing_n profess_v atheist_n atheist_n first_o the_o essence_n and_o existence_n of_o god_n against_o profane_a and_o wicked_a atheist_n and_o second_o against_o pagan_n the_o being_n of_o one_o only_a god_n this_o be_v here_o but_o breisly_a profess_v for_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o creed_n but_o only_o as_o a_o abbreviated_a profession_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o ground_n and_o guide_v we_o in_o the_o article_n which_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v they_o prove_v they_o in_o their_o preach_n as_o need_v require_v yet_o that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n as_o in_o the_o creed_n they_o suppose_v it_o so_o also_o they_o may_v do_v in_o their_o preach_n and_o need_v not_o to_o prove_v it_o to_o jew_n or_o gentile_n who_o be_v then_o only_o in_o the_o world_n and_o be_v never_o likely_a to_o deny_v it_o but_o now_o in_o these_o time_n of_o so_o many_o heresy_n i_o do_v not_o see_v that_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n whatsoever_o be_v more_o necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v for_o heresy_n as_o it_o be_v a_o corruption_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n so_o it_o corrupt_v and_o destroy_v by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o very_a hart_n and_o root_n of_o all_o faith_n and_o as_o it_o annull_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n it_o take_v away_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o certainty_n and_o open_v a_o gap_n to_o every_o man_n error_n to_o say_v what_o he_o list_v and_o for_o shameless_a atheism_n to_o enter_v in_o by_o it_o for_o make_v it_o once_o lawful_a to_o disobey_v the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o only_a authority_n of_o god_n external_o upon_o earth_n as_o all_o archhaeretik_n do_v who_o begin_v their_o new_a doctrine_n with_o obedience_n to_o no_o church_n then_o extant_a in_o all_o the_o world_n and_o than_o it_o follow_v that_o every_o man_n without_o control_v may_v believe_v and_o teach_v what_o he_o will_v himself_o for_o there_o be_v no_o authority_n upon_o earth_n to_o control_v he_o and_o so_o he_o may_v as_o well_o teach_v atheism_n as_o heresy_n second_o those_o that_o be_v of_o god_n be_v ordain_v say_v the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o be_v with_o order_n 13._o rom._n 13._o and_o he_o require_v there_o that_o we_o be_v subject_a to_o high_a power_n not_o only_o of_o necessity_n but_o for_o conscience_n sake_n now_o order_n import_v subjection_n and_o subordination_n of_o inferior_n to_o superior_a power_n if_o then_o you_o take_v away_o this_o subjection_n and_o subordination_n of_o inferior_n to_o superior_n as_o haeretik_n do_v by_o disobey_v the_o church_n you_o take_v away_o all_o order_n in_o religion_n and_o by_o consequence_n you_o take_v away_o god_n and_o bring_v in_o atheism_n and_o a_o worse_a disorder_n than_o be_v in_o hell_n how_o hateful_a then_o be_v heresy_n to_o god_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o all_o religion_n and_o how_o dangerous_a be_v atheism_n patrum_fw-la in_o collar_n patrum_fw-la and_o necessary_a to_o be_v prevent_v in_o haeretical_a time_n cassianus_n relate_v a_o example_n of_o this_o in_o which_o he_o show_v by_o experience_n that_o heresy_n lead_v into_o atheism_n he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a religious_a man_n who_o begin_v first_o of_o indiscretion_n to_o make_v comparison_n betwixt_o the_o saint_n and_o
into_o this_o sin_n as_o they_o have_v do_v into_o murder_n and_o even_o to_o murder_v themselves_o which_o notwithstanding_o by_o nature_n they_o abhor_v and_o can_v expect_v no_o pleasure_n but_o utmost_a pain_n in_o it_o it_o be_v indeed_o a_o marvel_n and_o most_o admirable_a that_o atheism_n give_v so_o great_a liberty_n to_o all_o sin_n there_o have_v be_v in_o the_o world_n so_o few_o that_o have_v fall_v into_o it_o and_o by_o this_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o god_n fight_v particular_o against_o it_o and_o have_v give_v by_o nature_n to_o reasonable_a creature_n to_o defend_v his_o power_n and_o goodness_n and_o perhaps_o neither_o those_o above_o mention_v be_v guilty_a of_o this_o sin_n first_o for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o those_o man_n be_v so_o much_o pervert_v in_o their_o mind_n and_o will_n as_o epicure_n be_v in_o the_o desire_n of_o liberty_n who_o notwithstanding_o as_o you_o have_v see_v come_v short_a of_o atheism_n second_o i_o find_v by_o chance_n in_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n where_o he_o put_v they_o by_o name_n and_o socrates_n together_o for_o defend_v of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o maintain_v of_o this_o proposition_n ignoro_fw-la '_o deos_fw-la i_o know_v not_o god_n meaning_n i_o know_v not_o many_o god_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n 14._o chrysos●o_o 4._o in_fw-la primam_fw-la ad_fw-la cor._n l._n 14._o but_o one_o only_a god_n and_o he_o say_v that_o they_o ultimum_fw-la subierunt_fw-la periculum_fw-la that_o be_v either_o lose_v their_o life_n or_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o their_o life_n for_o defend_v of_o that_o proposition_n now_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o socrates_n lose_v his_o life_n for_o defend_v of_o that_o proposition_n in_o the_o sense_n above_o mention_v of_o one_o only_a god_n and_o for_o this_o they_o may_v well_o be_v then_o in_o danger_n of_o their_o life_n atheism_n then_o be_v a_o sin_n which_o can_v be_v incur_v but_o by_o a_o general_a contradiction_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o by_o a_o violent_a force_n of_o nature_n and_o conscience_n to_o admit_v of_o all_o sin_n and_o which_o have_v in_o itself_o the_o malice_n of_o all_o sin_n as_o allow_v of_o all_o wickedness_n whatsoever_o how_o great_a then_o be_v the_o punishment_n of_o this_o grievous_a sin_n so_o much_o abhor_v by_o the_o world_n and_o contain_v after_o a_o sort_n the_o guilt_n of_o all_o sin_n socrates_n drink_v poison_v force_v unto_o it_o by_o infidel_n for_o defend_v of_o one_o god_n yet_o this_o be_v never_o a_o singularity_n in_o the_o world_n and_o even_o then_o be_v profess_v by_o the_o whole_a nation_n of_o the_o jew_n famous_a in_o the_o world_n what_o shall_v the_o atheist_n deserve_v for_o profess_v of_o that_o which_o all_o nation_n of_o the_o world_n have_v ever_o abhor_v and_o for_o contradict_v of_o that_o which_o all_o nation_n have_v ever_o profess_v and_o be_v before_o man_n profess_v by_o angel_n and_o even_o by_o lucifer_n the_o worst_a of_o devil_n the_o atheist_n in_o this_o go_v beyond_o lucifer_n and_o as_o for_o the_o height_n of_o his_o profaneness_n he_o deserve_v in_o a_o high_a nature_n the_o damnation_n of_o his_o soul_n than_o lucifer_n deserve_v hell_n because_o he_o deny_v the_o first_o principle_n of_o nature_n and_o all_o nation_n have_v by_o instinct_n of_o nature_n some_o religion_n he_o will_v have_v none_o leg_n de_fw-fr leg_n cicero_n there_o be_v no_o nation_n so_o barbarous_a but_o although_o it_o know_v not_o what_o god_n it_o shall_v have_v yet_o it_o know_v it_o shall_v have_v a_o god_n now_o if_o the_o atheist_n shall_v set_v himself_o to_o exclaim_v against_o all_o nation_n and_o shall_v say_v that_o they_o have_v all_o do_v this_o for_o some_o temporal_a respect_n it_o shall_v avail_v he_o no_o more_o then_o if_o some_o heinous_a malefactor_n or_o very_o vicious_a man_n shall_v exclaim_v against_o his_o superior_n and_o against_o all_o nation_n for_o punish_v of_o he_o and_o for_o hinder_v the_o mischief_n which_o he_o will_v otherwise_o perpetrate_v and_o by_o this_o say_n atheist_n condemn_v themselves_o the_o same_o natural_a reason_n that_o condemn_v sin_n and_o vice_n condemn_v they_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o all_o nation_n as_o more_o destroy_v of_o nature_n and_o order_n then_o any_o vicious_a man_n whatsoever_o and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a thing_n in_o public_a malefactor_n and_o shall_v avail_v they_o nothing_o to_o condemn_v the_o law_n of_o nation_n that_o condemn_v they_o so_o be_v it_o in_o atheist_n to_o exclaim_v against_o all_o nation_n and_o shall_v avail_v they_o nothing_o when_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v condemn_v they_o before_o god_n of_o the_o natural_a and_o experimental_a feel_n which_o we_o have_v of_o god_n man_n use_v rather_o to_o dissuade_v from_o vice_n then_o to_o disproove_v they_o because_o nature_n of_o itself_o without_o discourse_n of_o argument_n at_o the_o first_o apprehension_n abhor_v vice_n and_o therefore_o there_o need_v no_o disproof_n of_o it_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o atheism_n that_o as_o natural_o we_o love_v virtue_n and_o hate_n vice_n for_o the_o beauty_n and_o goodness_n which_o appear_v in_o the_o one_o and_o for_o the_o deformity_n and_o evil_n which_o we_o perceive_v in_o the_o other_o so_o the_o divine_a beauty_n and_o goodness_n draw_v we_o to_o it_o and_o by_o nature_n we_o be_v convert_v to_o god_n and_o averse_v from_o atheism_n even_o at_o the_o first_o apprehension_n as_o the_o great_a of_o all_o evil_n and_o our_o conscience_n tell_v we_o that_o after_o the_o very_a self_n same_o manner_n that_o we_o feel_v ourselves_o averse_v from_o vice_n so_o do_v we_o also_o find_v ourselves_o from_o atheism_n but_o only_o that_o we_o behold_v atheism_n as_o more_o deform_a and_o monstruous_a than_o any_o vice_n be_v and_o as_o we_o love_v and_o can_v but_o love_v virtue_n so_o we_o can_v but_o love_n god_n in_o himself_o and_o natural_o we_o love_v those_o who_o we_o see_v to_o love_v and_o serve_v he_o because_o we_o can_v but_o see_v and_o feel_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o and_o his_o power_n over_o we_o work_v in_o we_o and_o dispose_v of_o we_o and_o dispense_n unto_o we_o such_o perfection_n as_o he_o will_v give_v and_o not_o we_o will_v choose_v and_o lay_v upon_o we_o such_o imperfection_n of_o grief_n sickness_n sore_n passion_n of_o mind_n as_o he_o will_v and_o that_o which_o to_o nature_n be_v most_o terrible_a to_o wit_n death_n by_o all_o which_o we_o see_v a_o supernatural_a power-above_a our_o nature_n which_o ordain_v these_o thing_n and_o that_o power_n as_o by_o nature_n we_o see_v and_o feel_v it_o so_o also_o by_o nature_n wefeare_n it_o natural_o abhor_v sin_n by_o which_o we_o displease_v he_o it_o be_v true_a great_a sinner_n have_v many_o time_n sensible_o but_o little_a of_o this_o fear_n leave_v and_o may_v perhaps_o come_v to_o that_o hardness_n of_o hart_n as_o to_o have_v no_o feel_n at_o all_o of_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n when_o they_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o holy_a proverb_n the_o impious_a when_o he_o shall_v come_v into_o the_o depth_n of_o sin_n contemn_v 18._o prou._n 18._o but_o this_o proove_v not_o but_o that_o by_o nature_n he_o fear_v god_n it_o proove_v indeed_o the_o great_a mercy_n of_o god_n to_o suffer_v those_o vessel_n of_o wrath_n to_o continue_v so_o long_o without_o their_o due_a punishment_n that_o they_o fear_v he_o not_o and_o the_o great_a inclination_n which_o our_o corrupt_a nature_n have_v to_o corrupt_v still_o more_o and_o more_o and_o to_o fall_v deep_a and_o deep_o into_o sin_n and_o show_v how_o good_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v after_o any_o sin_n present_o to_o repent_v for_o it_o and_o as_o soon_o as_o we_o can_v to_o use_v those_o mean_n which_o we_o have_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o our_o conscience_n again_o lest_o that_o by_o continuance_n in_o one_o sin_n we_o fall_v into_o another_o and_o harden_v our_o heart_n by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o all_o sin_n although_o i_o say_v such_o man_n when_o they_o sin_n have_v no_o sensible_a feel_n of_o god_n or_o fear_n of_o his_o justice_n yet_o by_o nature_n they_o have_v that_o fear_n when_o they_o feel_v it_o no●_n hawk_n by_o long_a custom_n to_o their_o keeper_n loose_v the_o feel_n of_o that_o natural_a fear_n which_o they_o have_v of_o they_o and_o will_v sport_v with_o they_o and_o bite_v at_o they_o without_o any_o fear_n at_o all_o yet_o natural_o they_o have_v allwais_o the_o same_o fear_n of_o they_o and_o their_o keeper_n permit_v this_o have_v still_o the_o same_o power_n over_o they_o which_o they_o have_v before_o so_o many_o sinner_n by_o much_o sin_v and_o long_a continuance_n in_o sin_n may_v perhaps_o i_o say_v perhaps_o for_o perhaps_o they_o can_v quit_v
goodness_n have_v prepare_v for_o us._n but_o we_o will_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o unity_n of_o god._n in_o the_o first_o article_n of_o the_o crede_fw-la we_o profess_v two_o thing_n god_n one_o god_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o almighty_a god_n and_o second_o that_o we_o believe_v in_o one_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v maker_n but_o the_o maker_n to_o signify_v unity_n by_o the_o first_o atheism_n and_o by_o the_o second_o paganism_n be_v reject_v and_o the_o first_o be_v already_o so_o full_o declare_v it_o will_v not_o be_v needful_a to_o insist_v much_o upon_o the_o second_o point_n it_o be_v a_o verity_n which_o the_o wise_a of_o pagane_n philosopher_n have_v by_o reason_n discover_v who_o have_v confess_v one_o supreme_a and_o first_o cause_n of_o all_o effect_n and_o therefore_o s._n augustine_n report_v of_o seneca_n the_o philosopher_n 60.10_o aug_n de_fw-fr ciu_o decl_n 60.10_o that_o speak_v of_o idol_n he_o use_v to_o say_v that_o of_o custom_n they_o be_v adore_v but_o not_o of_o verity_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n dispute_v with_o the_o learnede_a pagan_n of_o the_o world_n the_o philosopher_n of_o athens_n upon_o this_o point_n 17._o act._n 17._o the_o god_n that_o make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o it_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n dwell_v not_o in_o temple_n make_v with_o hand_n need_v any_o thing_n where_o as_o himself_o give_v life_n unto_o all_o and_o breathe_v and_o all_o thing_n if_o god_n make_v the_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o it_o he_o must_v then_o have_v all_o within_o his_o power_n all_o must_v depend_v and_o stand_v need_n of_o he_o and_o he_o himself_o must_v stand_v need_n of_o nothing_o he_o be_v not_o then_o a_o granen_n idol_n that_o stand_v need_n of_o man_n to_o carve_v it_o nor_o any_o live_a creature_n as_o the_o dragon_n of_o babylon_n that_o stand_v need_n of_o some_o to_o serve_v it_o with_o food_n neither_o be_v he_o the_o sun_n or_o moon_n that_o stand_v need_n of_o some_o power_n to_o give_v it_o the_o limit_a perfection_n which_o it_o have_v as_o all_o other_o creature_n god_n need_v no_o other_o god_n for_o than_o he_o be_v not_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o all_o perfection_n include_v all_o perfection_n within_o himself_o this_o be_v sufficient_a by_o natural_a reason_n of_o this_o verity_n that_o which_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v in_o one_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o be_v of_o all_o creature_n heavenly_a and_o earthly_a and_o the_o consetuer_n of_o they_o a_o spiritual_a substance_n infinite_a in_o power_n infinite_a in_o wisdom_n infinite_a in_o goodness_n infinite_a in_o duration_n immense_a in_o infinite_a place_n possible_a and_o in_o all_o perfection_n infinite_a this_o we_o see_v by_o reason_n and_o believe_v by_o faith_n 6._o deut._n 6._o hear_v israël_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v one_o lord_n which_o word_n beside_o their_o divine_a authority_n have_v the_o high_a degree_n of_o humane_a credit_n as_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o authentical_a writing_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o world_n 4._o esa_n 44._o eph._n 4._o i_o be_o the_o first_o and_o i_o the_o last_o and_o beside_o i_o there_o be_v no_o god_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n man_n of_o more_o eminent_a dignity_n and_o authority_n as_o priest_n go_n man_n call_v go_n prophet_n judge_n etc._n etc._n be_v sometime_o in_o holy_a scripture_n call_v god_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o preeminency_n and_o authority_n over_o other_o by_o which_o they_o represent_v the_o divine_a power_n the_o second_o article_n and_o in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n our_o lord_n quest_n who_o be_v christ_n answ_n christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n incarnate_v true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n our_o redeemer_n judge_n and_o glorifyer_n all_o this_o we_o say_v in_o the_o creed_n when_o we_o profess_v our_o belief_n in_o lesus_fw-la christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marry_o crucify_a for_o our_o redemption_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o all_o and_o that_o there_o be_v life_n everlasting_a to_o wit_n to_o those_o that_o be_v just_a through_o the_o merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n thus_o this_o answer_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n in_o the_o which_o we_o have_v first_o profess_v our_o faith_n in_o god_n as_o he_o create_v we_o we_o profess_v he_o now_o in_o another_o mystery_n to_o wit_n as_o he_o be_v incarnate_v to_o redeem_v we_o a_o mystery_n which_o we_o can_v never_o acknowledge_v with_o sufficient_a gratitude_n for_o the_o understanding_n of_o which_o we_o may_v reflect_v upon_o our_o former_a condition_n and_o the_o misery_n out_o of_o which_o we_o be_v free_v by_o it_o man_n be_v in_o paradise_n in_o a_o happy_a state_n of_o spiritual_a and_o corporal_a delight_n his_o soul_n be_v in_o grace_n and_o favour_n with_o god_n and_o his_o body_n have_v then_o the_o gift_n of_o immortality_n that_o without_o die_v it_o shall_v enjoy_v those_o pleasure_n for_o a_o time_n and_o afterward_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n for_o ever_o he_o be_v warn_v only_o of_o one_o thing_n and_o that_o be_v to_o forbear_v one_o fruit_n of_o paradise_n which_o god_n to_o keep_v he_o in_o obedience_n and_o due_a subjection_n have_v forbid_v he_o to_o eat_v of_o 2._o gen._n 2._o of_o every_o tree_n of_o paradise_n eat_v thou_o but_o of_o the_o tree_n of_o knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o evil_o eat_v thou_o not_o for_o in_o what_o day_n soever_o thou_o shall_v eat_v of_o it_o thou_o shall_v die_v the_o death_n to_o wit_v the_o death_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n man_n forbear_v not_o but_o eat_v of_o that_o forbid_a tree_n and_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o eat_v of_o it_o his_o soul_n die_v instant_o and_o his_o body_n from_o that_o time_n begin_v to_o die_v but_o the_o death_n of_o our_o soul_n be_v indeed_o our_o true_a and_o great_a misery_n god_n be_v move_v with_o pity_n towards_o they_o and_o of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n he_o decree_v to_o revive_v they_o again_o to_o his_o divine_a grace_n and_o favour_n for_o this_o he_o send_v his_o only_a son_n to_o be_v incarnate_v that_o be_v to_o take_v the_o flesh_n and_o nature_n of_o man_n upon_o he_o that_o in_o that_o nature_n he_o may_v make_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o first_o sin_n which_o man_n have_v commit_v and_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n occasion_v by_o it_o and_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v by_o he_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n may_v then_o cease_v against_o we_o and_o we_o become_v his_o belove_a child_n and_o friend_n may_v serve_v he_o worthy_o and_o obtain_v the_o bliss_n of_o heaven_n which_o before_o we_o have_v lose_v all_o the_o person_n of_o the_o bless_a trinity_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n concur_v equal_o to_o the_o effect_n of_o this_o mystery_n as_o have_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o undivided_a power_n but_o the_o work_n be_v effect_v in_o the_o son_n only_o the_o second_o person_n who_o be_v incarnate_v author_n common_o declare_v this_o by_o the_o similitude_n of_o two_o help_a another_o to_o put_v on_o a_o garment_n they_o all_o three_o concur_v to_o the_o ve_n of_o one_o of_o they_o and_o one_o of_o they_o only_o be_v vest_v with_o the_o garment_n the_o garment_n in_o this_o mystery_n be_v the_o nature_n of_o man_n with_o which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n only_o be_v vest_v but_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a ghost_n both_o concur_v with_o he_o to_o the_o put_v on_o of_o that_o garment_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v so_o vest_v that_o in_o christ_n our_o nature_n be_v real_o unite_v to_o he_o we_o say_v true_o that_o christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v true_a man_n as_o consist_v of_o two_o destinct_a nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n he_o proceed_v eternal_o from_o god_n the_o father_n according_a to_o his_o humane_a nature_n he_o proceed_v in_o time_n from_o the_o bless_a virgin_n his_o mother_n and_o according_a to_o that_o nature_n he_o make_v satisfaction_n sufficient_a in_o itself_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o man_n that_o ever_o be_v or_o shall_v be_v and_o therefore_o we_o call_v he_o out_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n because_o all_o whosoever_o have_v be_v or_o can_v be_v save_v be_v save_v by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n he_o be_v our_o judge_n and_o in_o the_o latter_a day_n shall_v judge_v us._n he_o be_v our_o glorifyer_n for_o that_o by_o his_o merit_n our_o good_a work_n become_v meritorious_a and_o purchase_v of_o glory_n he_o be_v call_v jesus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v saviour_n not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v our_o saviour_n
to_o use_v their_o own_o will_n and_o to_o fulfil_v their_o desire_n upon_o they_o by_o what_o torment_v they_o will_v rather_o then_o to_o forsake_v the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thousand_o of_o thousand_o of_o faithful_a christian_n gather_v together_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v now_o ready_a with_o they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n to_o profess_v it_o but_o we_o will_v honour_v christ_n and_o comfort_v good_a christian_n by_o declare_v the_o testimony_n which_o god_n have_v give_v of_o he_o we_o have_v of_o christ_n two_o kind_n of_o divine_a testimony_n first_o by_o divine_a scripture_n and_o second_o by_o his_o miraculous_a work_n we_o will_v hear_v first_o what_o the_o scripture_n testify_v of_o he_o when_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n be_v fullfil_v and_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n there_o be_v then_o in_o all_o the_o world_n but_o two_o only_a religion_n or_o divine_a worship_n profess_v to_o wit_n the_o religion_n of_o the_o jew_n who_o worship_v one_o eternal_a and_o omnipotent_a god_n and_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o gentile_n or_o pagan_n adore_v many_o go_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o one_o god_n be_v in_o the_o first_o article_n settle_v for_o true_a and_o the_o worship_n of_o many_o god_n reject_v by_o the_o apostle_n for_o false_a it_o follow_v that_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v then_o the_o people_n of_o god_n who_o he_o have_v choose_v to_o be_v true_o honour_v among_o second_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o jew_n have_v then_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o divine_a worship_n whatsoever_o they_o then_o believe_v be_v true_a and_o that_o they_o then_o believe_v in_o christ_n as_o to_o come_v he_o be_v then_o indeed_o to_o come_v and_o whatsoever_o they_o believe_v of_o he_o then_o as_o future_a the_o same_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v of_o he_o as_o past_a and_o whatsoever_o the_o scripture_n receive_v by_o they_o which_o be_v the_o old_a testament_n have_v declare_v of_o he_o that_o be_v allwais_o to_o be_v believe_v as_o of_o divine_a authority_n and_o as_o speak_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o dictate_v those_o scripture_n for_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n in_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o he_o now_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n deliver_v so_o plane_o the_o come_n of_o a_o messiah_n or_o which_o be_v all_o one_o a_o christ_n to_o redeem_v the_o world_n that_o all_o whosoever_o receive_v those_o scripture_n do_v still_o confess_v it_o for_o it_o be_v the_o main_a butt_n and_o prime_a scope_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n to_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v promise_v from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o patriarch_n and_o reveal_v from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o the_o prophet_n that_o the_o world_n may_v expect_v he_o then_o to_o come_v as_o it_o be_v the_o butt_n and_o scope_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n to_o declare_v he_o to_o the_o world_n to_o be_v already_o come_v and_o as_o the_o new_a testament_n describe_v all_o over_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o enjoy_v he_o so_o do_v the_o old_a testament_n comfort_v the_o faithful_a then_o with_o the_o expectation_n and_o hope_n of_o he_o first_o his_o come_n be_v signify_v even_o at_o first_o in_o paradise_n in_o terror_n to_o the_o serpent_n who_o have_v cause_v our_o sin_n when_o our_o lord_n threaten_v he_o with_o a_o enemy_n that_o shall_v come_v against_o he_o say_v i_o will_v put_v enmity_n betwixt_o thou_o and_o the_o woman_n 3._o gen._n 3._o and_o thy_o seed_n and_o the_o seed_n of_o she_o she_o shall_v bruise_v thy_o head_n in_o piece_n and_o thou_o shall_v lie_v in_o wait_n of_o her_o heel_n christ_n be_v by_o this_o mysterious_o denote_v god_n then_o declare_v that_o the_o enmity_n of_o mankind_n with_o the_o serpent_n be_v to_o be_v especial_o betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o seed_n of_o a_o woman_n by_o which_o it_o be_v signify_v that_o christ_n the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o serpent_n great_a enemy_n shall_v be_v particular_o the_o seed_n of_o a_o woman_n and_o be_v not_o there_o say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o a_o man_n because_o he_o be_v to_o be_v conceive_v and_o bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n mother_n without_o the_o help_n of_o man_n and_o this_o be_v the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n that_o the_o sin_n of_o mankind_n be_v first_o occasion_v by_o a_o woman_n he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v the_o death_n and_o destruction_n of_o sin_n shall_v be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n of_o woman_n seed_n only_o without_o man_n the_o same_o be_v deliver_v by_o revelation_n to_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n afterward_o and_o they_o do_v not_o only_o declare_v it_o to_o posterity_n but_o also_o describe_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o accomplishment_n of_o it_o 9_o esa_n 9_o a_o little_a child_n be_v bear_v to_o we_o and_o a_o son_n be_v give_v to_o we_o and_o principality_n be_v make_v upon_o his_o shoulder_n and_o his_o name_n shall_v be_v call_v marvelous_a counsellor_n god_n strong_a father_n of_o the_o world_n to_o come_v the_o prince_n of_o peace_n and_o in_o another_o place_n the_o same_o prophet_n describe_v the_o circumstance_n of_o his_o come_n among_o the_o jew_n arise_v be_v illuminate_v jerusalem_n 60._o esa_n 60._o because_o thy_o light_n be_v come_v etc._n etc._n upon_o thou_o shall_v our_o lord_n arise_v and_o his_o glory_n shall_v be_v see_v upon_o thou_o and_o the_o gentile_n shall_v walk_v in_o thy_o light_n and_o king_n in_o the_o brightness_n of_o thy_o rise_v lift_v up_o thy_o eye_n round_o about_o and_o see_v all_o these_o be_v gather_v together_o to_o thou_o thy_o son_n shall_v come_v from_o a_o far_o and_o thy_o daughter_n shall_v rise_v from_o the_o side_n then_o shall_v thou_o see_v and_o abound_v and_o thy_o hart_n shall_v marvel_v and_o shall_v be_v enlarge_v when_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o sea_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o thou_o the_o strength_n of_o gentile_n shall_v come_v to_o thou_o here_o it_o be_v foretell_v that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v among_o the_o jew_n under_o the_o dominion_n and_o command_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o come_n of_o king_n to_o acknowledge_v his_o power_n and_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o gentile_n who_o by_o multitude_n far_o and_o near_o shall_v receive_v the_o light_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o obey_v he_o our_o lord_n but_o i_o need_v not_o stand_v to_o allege_v scripture_n for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n for_o it_o be_v infer_v by_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v already_o that_o the_o jew_n who_o have_v then_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n beleve_v it_o and_o it_o shall_v appear_v by_o many_o place_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o i_o shall_v afterward_o allege_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o difference_n betwixt_o that_o which_o the_o people_n of_o god_n believe_v of_o he_o by_o those_o scripture_n before_o his_o come_n and_o that_o which_o the_o faithful_a now_o believe_v of_o he_o since_o his_o come_n but_o only_o in_o the_o diversity_n of_o time_n they_o be_v before_o and_o we_o after_o he_o they_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o to_o come_v and_o expect_v of_o he_o we_o have_v receive_v the_o joy_n of_o his_o come_n they_o be_v not_o then_o call_v christian_n although_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v but_o one_o nation_n and_o people_n of_o the_o israëlit_v consist_v of_o diverse_a tribe_n and_o take_v their_o denomination_n of_o je●●es_n from_o the_o ●ribe_n of_o juda_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a tribe_n and_o of_o which_o it_o be_v foretell_v that_o the_o messiah_n shall_v come_v but_o after_o his_o come_n when_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o divine_a worship_n be_v not_o confine_v to_o one_o only_a nation_n but_o be_v enlarge_v unto_o other_o nation_n and_o make_v common_a to_o all_o than_o all_o tru●_n believer_n begin_v to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o apostle_n christian_n 11._o act._n 11._o as_o by_o a_o name_n which_o abstract_v from_o all_o nation_n to_o those_o who_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o true_a messiah_n and_o redeemer_n of_o the_o w●rld_n so_o th●●_n all_o true_a believer_n have_v allw●is_o believe_v in_o christ_n as_o the_o israëlit_v or_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v immediate_o before_o his_o come_n and_o as_o now_o we_o do_v but_o when_o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o preach_v his_o heavenly_a doctrine_n among_o the_o sew_v a_o people_n whole_o drown_v in_o sin_n and_o give_v to_o pride_n and_o desire_n of_o this_o world_n he_o abstain_v from_o their_o evil_a way_n rebuke_v their_o vice_n and_o exhort_v they_o to_o virtue_n and_o contempt_n of_o the_o world_n without_o give_v any_o hope_n of_o temporal_a riches_n and_o glory_n but_o only_o of_o spiritual_a blessing_n and_o such_o felicity_n as_o be_v to_o be_v
repeat_v in_o honour_n of_o it_o as_o by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n the_o mass_n the_o creed_n the_o hail_n mary_n and_o the_o like_a in_o which_o it_o be_v still_o commemorate_a that_o we_o behold_v in_o they_o the_o fulfil_n of_o that_o great_a vision_n which_o moses_n have_v 3_o exo._n 3_o when_o our_o lord_n appear_v to_o he_o in_o a_o flame_n of_o fire_n out_o of_o the_o mid_n of_o a_o bush_n and_o the_o bush_n be_v on_o fire_n and_o be_v not_o burn_v by_o which_o the_o conception_n of_o christ_n be_v fignify_v to_o be_v of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n without_o detriment_n of_o her_o virginity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v bear_v without_o pain_n to_o she_o and_o this_o vision_n as_o it_o signify_v the_o son_n of_o god_n vest_v with_o our_o nature_n be_v so_o high_a and_o glorious_a that_o moses_n be_v command_v to_o bare_a his_o foot_n for_o the_o holiness_n of_o the_o very_a ground_n on_o which_o it_o appear_v 16._o job._n 16._o he_o at_o who_o beck_n the_o pillar_n of_o heaven_n tremble_v and_o dread_n be_v involue_v in_o the_o mysery_n of_o our_o nature_n to_o draw_v we_o to_o virtue_n and_o to_o save_v we_o by_o his_o merit_n the_o four_o article_n svffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n be_v crucify_a dead_a and_o bury_v the_o apostle_n have_v profess_v christ_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o divinity_n as_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n and_o in_o the_o mystery_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o joy_n of_o his_o birth_n set_v he_o now_o before_o our_o eye_n in_o his_o passion_n and_o death_n that_o sacred_a body_n which_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o divine_a word_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o a_o virgin_n we_o behold_v it_o now_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o cruel_a executioner_n who_o have_v free_a power_n to_o torment_n and_o to_o kill_v it_o see_v now_o that_o body_n nail_v upon_o a_o cros_n and_o so_o expose_v to_o the_o scorn_n of_o the_o world_n that_o face_n of_o life_n who_o beauty_n the_o angel_n desire_v to_o behold_v be_v leave_v pale_a and_o dead_a without_o comeliness_n and_o beauty_n the_o horrible_a pain_n which_o christ_n suffer_v in_o his_o passion_n be_v not_o to_o be_v apprehend_v by_o we_o but_o be_v without_o doubt_n so_o great_a in_o itself_o that_o the_o apprehension_n of_o it_o in_o he_o have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v bereave_v he_o of_o life_n if_o he_o have_v not_o support_v nature_n by_o supernatural_a mean_n as_o he_o do_v in_o that_o agony_n which_o he_o suffer_v in_o the_o garden_n by_o the_o apprehension_n only_o of_o his_o future_a passion_n 26._o mat._n 26._o when_o he_o say_v my_o soul_n be_v sorrowful_a even_o unto_o death_n for_o his_o body_n as_o it_o be_v conceive_v and_o frame_v only_o of_o the_o virgin_n blood_n be_v of_o a_o more_o tender_a complexion_n and_o more_o sensible_a of_o pain_n than_o other_o be_v and_o so_o he_o have_v a_o more_o lively_a apprehension_n great_a horror_n and_o more_o repugnance_n from_o the_o torment_n of_o his_o passion_n which_o he_o foresee_v and_o according_a to_o the_o inferior_a part_n of_o his_o soul_n he_o desire_v and_o pray_v to_o be_v free_v from_o although_o they_o be_v woluntary_a to_o he_o for_o the_o understanding_n of_o which_o we_o be_v to_o understande_v two_o power_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n common_o call_v the_o superior_a and_o inferior_a part_n or_o portion_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o superior_a power_n be_v in_o respect_n of_o its_o high_a operation_n of_o reason_n and_o will_n which_o it_o have_v equal_a with_o the_o angel_n the_o inferior_a part_n or_o portion_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o inseriour_a powerwhich_v it_o have_v as_o it_o be_v sensitive_a cause_v we_o to_o feel_v by_o our_o sense_n as_o inferior_a creature_n do_v according_a to_o the_o superior_a of_o the_o soul_n the_o passion_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o sorrowful_a to_o he_o as_o not_o be_v contrary_a to_o his_o reason_n and_o will_n but_o it_o be_v most_o voluntary_a nay_o joyful_a to_o he_o he_o go_v as_o a_o giant_n to_o run_v that_o race_n and_o be_v straighten_v until_o he_o have_v perfect_v the_o baptism_n of_o his_o passion_n according_a to_o the_o inferior_a power_n of_o the_o soul_n as_o it_o be_v sensible_a he_o can_v not_o but_o feel_v pain_n and_o his_o sense_n do_v abhor_v the_o torment_n of_o his_o passion_n for_o otherwise_o they_o have_v be_v no_o torment_n unto_o he_o and_o as_o the_o complexion_n and_o constitution_n of_o his_o body_n be_v more_o perfect_a so_o be_v he_o more_o sensible_a of_o pain_n and_o therefore_o the_o very_a apprehension_n of_o his_o passion_n have_v a_o more_o violent_a effect_n in_o he_o than_o the_o pain_n of_o death_n be_v ever_o read_v to_o have_v have_v in_o any_o other_o cause_v a_o sweat_n of_o blood_n to_o run_v down_o to_o the_o earth_n from_o he_o this_o will_v he_o suffer_v before_o his_o passion_n to_o show_v that_o his_o sorrow_n be_v above_o all_o sorrow_n and_o most_o horrible_a to_o he_o yet_o he_o will_v preserve_v his_o life_n until_o he_o have_v suffer_v those_o thing_n and_o fullfil_v that_o which_o the_o scripture_n have_v foretell_v of_o he_o for_o two_o reason_n the_o apostle_n will_v specify_v that_o christ_n suffer_v under_o pontius_n pilate_n first_o for_o the_o more_o particular_a and_o exact_a relation_n of_o his_o passion_n to_o show_v that_o the_o prophecy_n be_v fullfil_v that_o have_v signify_v the_o time_n about_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v and_o second_o for_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o own_o word_n to_o show_v the_o accomplish_n of_o that_o which_o himself_o have_v foretell_v when_o speak_v of_o his_o passion_n he_o say_v 20._o mat_n 20._o they_o shall_v deliver_v he_o to_o the_o gentile_n to_o be_v mock_v and_o scourge_v and_o crucify_v which_o be_v fullfil_v when_o the_o jew_n apprehend_v he_o deliver_v he_o to_o pilate_n and_o his_o soldier_n who_o be_v gentile_n and_o scourge_v and_o crucify_v he_o for_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o jew_n see_v that_o they_o can_v not_o resist_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o preach_v nor_o the_o power_n of_o his_o miracle_n cause_v he_o to_o be_v apprehend_v and_o to_o be_v send_v as_o a_o malefactor_n to_o pontius_n pilate_n who_o be_v then_o the_o roman_a precedent_n of_o jury_n crucify_a crucify_a and_o who_o by_o the_o instigation_n of_o the_o jew_n adjudge_v he_o as_o they_o desire_v to_o the_o death_n of_o the_o cros_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o that_o place_n the_o most_o disgraceful_a kind_n of_o death_n that_o malefactor_n can_v suffer_v and_o be_v so_o much_o abhor_v by_o the_o law_n that_o we_o read_v in_o deuteronomy_n he_o be_v accurse_v of_o god_n that_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n 21._o deut._n 21._o yet_o this_o the_o most_o reproachful_a of_o all_o death_n be_v christ_n content_v to_o undergo_v for_o we_o and_o that_o in_o a_o most_o ignominious_a manner_n betwixt_o two_o the_o eve_n we_o have_v in_o the_o scripture_n many_o mysterious_a type_n and_o honourable_a figure_n by_o which_o god_n will_v foreshow_v the_o death_n of_o his_o son_n innocent_a abel_n murder_v by_o his_o brother_n be_v a_o figure_n of_o jesus_n christ_n kill_v by_o the_o jew_n 22._o gen._n 4._o gen._n 22._o the_o sacrifice_n which_o abraham_n be_v command_v to_o offer_v in_o his_o only_a son_n be_v a_o type_n of_o christ_n offer_v for_o we_o on_o the_o cros._n 12._o exo._n 12._o the_o unspotted_a lamb_n which_o the_o israëlit_n be_v command_v to_o offer_v when_o they_o come_v out_o of_o egypt_n represent_v also_o our_o saviour_n offer_v for_o our_o redemption_n of_o who_o the_o prophet_n say_v 11._o hier._n 11._o and_o i_o as_o a_o mild_a lamb_n that_o be_v carry_v to_o a_o victim_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n which_o god_n command_v to_o be_v erect_v that_o the_o people_n behold_v it_o may_v be_v cure_v from_o the_o sting_n of_o the_o fiery_a serpent_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o shadow_n of_o christ_n nail_v on_o the_o cros._n for_o as_o those_o that_o be_v wound_v by_o serpent_n be_v cure_v by_o that_o and_o as_o of_o viper_n and_o scorpion_n a_o medicine_n be_v make_v against_o their_o poison_n and_o sting_n so_o the_o malice_n of_o sin_n commit_v by_o man_n be_v cure_v by_o man_n again_o in_o jesus_n christ_n contrary_a to_o he_o by_o a_o man_n death_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o by_o a_o man_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a 1.15_o cor._n 1.15_o and_o as_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n be_v in_o show_v a_o serpent_n but_o have_v no_o sting_n nor_o poison_n to_o hurt_v but_o virtue_n to_o cure_v the_o sting_n of_o other_o serpent_n so_o christ_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o sin_n have_v no_o sin_n 8._o rom._n 8._o but_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o
resurrection_n of_o christ_n but_o his_o resurrection_n excel_v they_o in_o many_o respect_n first_o for_o that_o he_o raise_v himself_o as_o i_o have_v say_v by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o all_o other_o be_v raise_v by_o his_o power_n second_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o aroze_v glorious_a three_o other_o aroze_v to_o death_n as_o well_o as_o to_o life_n four_o his_o resurrection_n be_v the_o cause_n and_o mean_n of_o all_o our_o glorious_a resurrection_n in_o these_o respect_n s._n paul_n call_v he_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o those_o that_o rise_v to_o life_n 15._o cor._n 15._o christ_n say_v he_o be_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a the_o first_o fruit_n of_o they_o that_o sleep_n in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a but_o every_o one_o in_o his_o own_o order_n the_o first_o fruit_n christ_n then_o those_o that_o be_v of_o christ_n the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n and_o encouragement_n to_o the_o good_a for_o his_o rise_v to_o glory_n have_v give_v we_o hope_n of_o a_o glorious_a resurrection_n bless_a be_v god_n say_v s._n 1.1_o pet._n 1.1_o peter_n and_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v regenerate_v we_o unto_o a_o lively_a hope_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o jesus_n christ_n from_o the_o dead_a unto_o a_o inheritance_n incorruptible_a we_o be_v encourage_v to_o bear_v with_o patience_n all_o affliction_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o persecution_n in_o this_o world_n in_o hope_n to_o rise_v glorious_a with_o he_o christ_n be_v our_o head_n and_o we_o be_v the_o member_n of_o his_o body_n and_o he_o have_v make_v way_n through_o persecution_n for_o we_o we_o ought_v courageous_o to_o follow_v he_o the_o sixth_o article_n he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n christ_n have_v consummate_v the_o work_n of_o our_o redemption_n by_o his_o death_n on_o the_o cros_n and_o after_o his_o death_n perform_v his_o resurrection_n and_o have_v after_o his_o resurrection_n remain_v forty_o day_n on_o earth_n to_o teach_v his_o disciple_n speak_v of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v instruct_v they_o concern_v the_o government_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n upon_o earth_n he_o have_v do_v now_o all_o for_o which_o his_o father_n send_v he_o and_o be_v to_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o to_o carry_v mankind_n unto_o that_o bless_a place_n of_o glory_n which_o he_o have_v purchase_v for_o they_o he_o take_v therefore_o his_o disciple_n unto_o mount_n olivet_n to_o be_v the_o witness_n of_o his_o ascension_n and_o lift_v up_o his_o eye_n and_o blessing_n they_o he_o be_v glorious_o elevate_v in_o their_o sight_n and_o they_o be_v ●avished_v with_o joy_n and_o spiritual_a consolation_n at_o it_o behold_v two_o angel_n who_o the_o evangelist_n call_v man_n stand_v beside_o they_o in_o white_a garment_n and_o say_v to_o they_o 1._o act._n 1._o you_o man_n of_o galily_n why_o stand_v you_o look_v into_o heaven_n this_o jesus_n which_o be_v assumpt_v from_o you_o into_o heaven_n shall_v so_o come_v as_o you_o have_v see_v he_o go_v into_o heaven_n thus_o will_v our_o saviour_n ascend_v that_o he_o may_v give_v unto_o the_o world_n a_o taste_n and_o scantling_n of_o the_o future_a glory_n and_o a_o memorial_n of_o his_o second_o come_v this_o be_v the_o most_o glorious_a day_n that_o ever_o be_v to_o mankind_n for_o this_o be_v the_o day_n of_o our_o first_o enter_v into_o heaven_n the_o holy_a prophet_n king_n danid_n invit_v all_o the_o world_n to_o the_o joy_n of_o this_o day_n say_v all_o you_o nation_n clap_v hand_n 46._o ps_n 46._o make_v iubilation_n to_o god_n in_o the_o voice_n of_o exultation_n god_n be_v ascend_v in_o iubilation_n to_o day_n man_n nature_n triumph_v in_o the_o heaven_n and_o that_o so_o glorious_a that_o it_o be_v exalt_v above_o all_o the_o celestial_a power_n of_o angel_n to_o the_o very_a right_a hand_n of_o god_n ascen_n ser._n 3._o the_o ascen_n see_v o_o man_n say_v s._n john_n chrysostome_n how_o high_a thy_o nature_n be_v exalt_v consider_v the_o distance_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o of_o the_o low_a to_o the_o high_a heaven_n and_o from_o those_o high_a heaven_n to_o the_o angel_n and_o from_o they_o to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o from_o those_o to_o the_o seat_n where_o our_o lord_n sit_v humane_a nature_n be_v exalt_v thus_o high_a above_o all_o that_o nature_n which_o be_v of_o itself_o so_o low_o that_o it_o can_v be_v no_o low_o become_v now_o so_o high_a that_o it_o can_v be_v raise_v no_o high_a and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o show_v how_o high_a that_o glory_n be_v which_o mankind_n then_o receive_v will_v inspire_v the_o apostle_n to_o make_v such_o a_o remarkable_a expression_n of_o it_o as_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v set_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n that_o as_o great_a prince_n and_o eminent_a personage_n when_o they_o will_v show_v a_o more_o than_o ordinary_a respect_n to_o some_o other_o prince_n their_o friend_n they_o set_v he_o on_o their_o right_a hand_n so_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n in_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o mankind_n ascend_v into_o heaven_n the_o king_n of_o heaven_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a world_n will_v be_v say_v to_o set_v he_o on_o his_o right_a hand_n a_o great_a expression_n of_o his_o love_n can_v not_o be_v make_v then_o this_o yet_o thus_o will_v he_o have_v his_o apostle_n to_o express_v it_o christ_n ascend_v both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n for_o they_o be_v once_o unite_v together_o in_o his_o resurrection_n be_v never_o more_o to_o be_v separate_v again_o he_o ascend_v by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o not_o as_o elias_n abacuc_n s._n philip_n or_o other_o who_o be_v elevate_v into_o the_o air_n carry_v by_o angel_n for_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n be_v then_o unglorify_v can_v not_o by_o their_o own_o power_n ascend_v but_o christ_n beside_o that_o he_o ascend_v by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o divinity_n be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o glory_n his_o body_n be_v perfect_o subject_v to_o his_o soul_n and_o be_v therefore_o elevate_v by_o it_o and_o stand_v no_o need_n of_o the_o external_a help_n of_o angel_n in_o that_o he_o be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n we_o be_v to_o understande_v a_o sigurative_a manner_n of_o speech_n which_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v use_v to_o accommodate_v himself_o to_o our_o weak_a understanding_n which_o can_v have_v nothing_o represent_v to_o they_o but_o by_o the_o species_n of_o corporal_a thing_n and_o so_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n to_o show_v how_o high_o our_o nature_n be_v exalt_v in_o he_o although_o god_n have_v no_o hand_n nor_o corporal_a part_n as_o be_v a_o spiritual_a substance_n that_o need_v not_o they_o neither_o ought_v we_o to_o think_v by_o this_o that_o there_o be_v any_o precedency_n of_o place_n or_o degree_n of_o dignity_n in_o the_o person_n of_o the_o b._n trinity_n but_o that_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v all_o of_o equal_a and_o infinite_a dignity_n christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o creature_n in_o that_o he_o be_v superior_a to_o they_o in_o dignity_n and_o glory_n and_o according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n he_o may_v be_v say_v to_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n in_o this_o sense_n and_o to_o this_o end_n that_o we_o may_v not_o understande_v as_o arius_n do_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o father_n for_o which_o reason_n the_o holy_a psalmist_n also_o place_v the_o son_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n 109._o ps_n 109._o and_o then_o present_o in_o the_o same_o psalm_n the_o father_n on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o son_n to_o signify_v equality_n betwixt_o they_o let_v we_o now_o apply_v this_o mystery_n to_o the_o profit_n of_o our_o soul_n that_o they_o may_v have_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o and_o receive_v the_o gift_n which_o be_v then_o give_v 67._o ps_n 67._o for_o it_o be_v write_v ascend_v on_o high_a he_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a he_o give_v gift_n to_o man_n 4._o iph._n 4._o these_o gift_n be_v too_o great_a to_o be_v speak_v for_o unto_o some_o he_o give_v then_o the_o gift_n of_o heavenly_a bless_v towit_n to_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o in_o limbus_n who_o he_o free_v out_o of_o captivity_n and_o carry_v with_o he_o and_o to_o those_o who_o he_o leave_v behind_o he_o on_o earth_n he_o give_v the_o promise_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o perform_v that_o promise_n within_o a_o while_n send_v he_o to_o comfort_v and_o
encourage_v they_o if_o we_o will_v have_v these_o gift_n and_o will_v ascend_v with_o christ_n we_o must_v forsake_v sin_n that_o hinder_v we_o of_o he_o ascen_n ser._n 2._o the_o ascen_n our_o sin_n say_v s._n augustine_n as_o net_n entangle_v we_o and_o as_o chain_n tie_v we_o down_o to_o the_o earth_n that_o we_o can_v ascend_v and_o therefore_o as_o the_o psalmist_n have_v say_v let_v we_o break_v their_o fetter_n let_v we_o leave_v of_o our_o pride_n our_o covetousness_n our_o carnal_a sin_n that_o be_v cure_v from_o they_o we_o may_v ascend_v with_o our_o physician_n thus_o s._n augustine_n and_o i_o will_v add_v thus_o much_o to_o he_o that_o as_o every_o one_o be_v incline_v to_o some_o particular_a sin_n or_o sin_n by_o which_o as_o by_o a_o great_a chain_n and_o main_a root_n he_o stick_v fast_o in_o the_o earth_n and_o be_v hinder_v from_o ascend_v to_o christ_n so_o ought_v we_o to_o labour_v more_o earnest_o to_o root_v out_o that_o sin_n out_o of_o our_o heart_n which_o be_v more_o particular_a and_o proper_a to_o we_o and_o which_o we_o be_v most_o guilty_a of_o that_o we_o may_v sing_v with_o joy_n unto_o god_n thou_o have_v break_v my_o bond_n i_o will_v sacrifice_v to_o thou_o the_o haste_n of_o praise_n 115._o ps_n 115._o let_v we_o keep_v in_o our_o mind_n the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v confidence_n in_o he_o who_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n allwais_o ready_a to_o pray_v for_o us._n 1.2_o io._n 1.2_o we_o have_v say_v s._n john_n anaduocate_n with_o the_o father_n jesus_n christ_n if_o christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n have_v assume_v to_o himself_o the_o glory_n of_o this_o world_n and_o live_v as_o a_o prince_n upon_o earth_n have_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o his_o dominion_n as_o subject_v to_o he_o he_o will_v have_v have_v follower_n enough_o we_o shall_v all_o have_v flock_v unto_o his_o court_n but_o that_o will_v have_v be_v of_o curiosity_n in_o many_o and_o of_o a_o unperfect_a love_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n sometime_o bear_v to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v visible_o with_o they_o but_o how_o much_o more_o ought_v we_o to_o desire_v to_o be_v with_o he_o in_o heaven_n and_o to_o aspire_v unto_o that_o bless_a court_n he_o will_v ascend_v thither_o that_o we_o may_v follow_v he_o thither_o for_o this_o be_v all_o that_o he_o desire_v father_n who_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o 17._o io._n 17._o i_o will_v that_o where_o i_o be_o they_o also_o be_v with_o i_o christ_n be_v indeed_o our_o belove_a spouse_n and_o the_o only_a treasure_n of_o a_o christian_n soul_n we_o ought_v to_o love_v he_o above_o all_o and_o to_o seek_v in_o all_o thing_n to_o please_v he_o and_o to_o remain_v with_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n to_o draw_v we_o after_o he_o and_o that_o our_o heart_n may_v be_v where_o our_o treasure_n be_v and_o our_o conversation_n in_o heaven_n let_v then_o every_o one_o now_o resolve_v to_o leave_v of_o all_o sin_n and_o begin_v to_o set_v forward_o in_o his_o ascension_n with_o christ_n and_o let_v we_o think_v that_o be_v now_o in_o our_o journey_n to_o heaven_n ward_n every_o day_n and_o every_o hour_n we_o be_v draw_v near_o and_o near_o to_o he_o the_o seven_o article_n from_o thence_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v we_o all_o both_o the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a christ_n have_v many_o honourable_a and_o worthy_a title_n he_o be_v our_o saviour_n or_o redeemer_n he_o be_v our_o advocate_n and_o he_o be_v our_o judge_n in_o the_o former_a article_n the_o apostle_n have_v deliver_v his_o two_o first_o title_n now_o they_o propose_v he_o as_o our_o judge_n 2.5_o cor._n 2.5_o we_o must_v all_o be_v manifest_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n say_v s._n paul_n that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o proper_a thing_n of_o the_o body_n according_a as_o he_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n there_o be_v two_o judgement_n in_o which_o christ_n sit_v as_o judge_v over_o us._n first_o there_o be_v the_o private_a and_o particular_a judgement_n of_o every_o one_o at_o his_o death_n second_o there_o be_v a_o general_a day_n of_o judgement_n for_o all_o our_o soul_n depart_v in_o death_n from_o our_o body_n be_v present_o set_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n who_o as_o judge_v shall_v call_v they_o to_o a_o account_n of_o all_o whatsoever_o they_o have_v think_v say_v or_o do_v and_o weigh_v all_o with_o a_o exact_a and_o just_a balance_n he_o shall_v give_v sentence_n just_o according_a to_o our_o work_n beside_o this_o god_n will_v for_o many_o reason_n ordain_v one_o solemn_a day_n for_o the_o general_a judgement_n of_o all_o first_o for_o the_o great_a honour_n of_o christ_n our_o judge_n that_o as_o he_o be_v public_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n condemn_v by_o the_o wicked_a so_o he_o may_v public_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n show_v his_o power_n and_o innocency_n and_o condemn_v they_o second_o for_o the_o great_a honour_n of_o the_o just_a three_o for_o the_o great_a confusion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o of_o the_o damn_a soul_n god_n then_o make_v a_o public_a manifestation_n of_o his_o love_n of_o goodness_n and_o of_o the_o hatred_n which_o he_o bear_v to_o sin_n with_o infinite_a liberality_n reward_v the_o one_o and_o with_o extreme_a and_o utmost_a severity_n punish_v the_o other_o four_o be_v that_o we_o see_v posterity_n for_o the_o most_o part_n to_o imitate_v their_o praedecessor_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o way_n which_o they_o have_v tread_v out_o to_o they_o and_o this_o imitation_n of_o good_a or_o evil_a praedecessor_n to_o last_v sometime_o for_o many_o year_n and_o age_n and_o may_v last_v we_o know_v not_o how_o long_a it_o be_v convenient_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o end_n one_o general_a day_n of_o judgement_n in_o which_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o much_o every_o one_o have_v contribute_v to_o the_o good_a or_o evil_a of_o other_o after_o they_o even_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n last_o that_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n which_o have_v accompany_v together_o in_o this_o life_n and_o both_o of_o they_o concur_v joint_o in_o their_o work_n may_v meet_v and_o be_v unite_v again_o and_o remain_v together_o in_o pleasure_n or_o in_o pain_n for_o ever_o christ_n shall_v perform_v this_o office_n of_o judge_n even_o as_o he_o be_v man_n for_o as_o king_n delegate_v their_o authority_n to_o those_o who_o they_o make_v judge_n to_o judge_v and_o to_o give_v sentence_n in_o person_n of_o the_o king_n so_o will_v god_n honour_v the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n give_v he_o authority_n as_o judge_v in_o his_o place_n according_a to_o s._n john_n 5._o io._n 5._o he_o have_v give_v he_o power_n to_o do_v judgement_n also_o because_o he_o be_v the_o son_n of_o man_n s._n peter_n preach_v in_o cornelius_n his_o house_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n after_o that_o he_o have_v speak_v of_o his_o passion_n and_o resurrection_n he_o draw_v to_o a_o end_n in_o these_o word_n 10._o act._n 10._o he_o command_v we_o to_o preach_v to_o the_o people_n and_o to_o testify_v that_o it_o be_v he_o that_o of_o god_n be_v appoint_v judge_n of_o the_o live_n and_o of_o the_o dead_a it_o be_v then_o jesus_n christ_n that_o shall_v call_v upon_o the_o bless_a and_o from_o his_o glorious_a judgement_n feat_n shall_v say_v to_o they_o come_v you_o bless_v of_o my_o father_n possess_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o from_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o wo●ld_n and_o it_o be_v he_o who_o from_o a_o terrible_a tribunal_n shall_v pronounce_v to_o the_o wicked_a 25._o mat._n 25._o get_v you_o away_o from_o i_o you_o curse_a into_o fire_n everlasting_a which_o be_v prepare_v for_o the_o denill_n and_o his_o angel_n in_o this_o sentence_n of_o the_o damn_a there_o be_v a_o double_a punishment_n include_v the_o one_o be_v the_o great_a loss_n which_o they_o incur_v and_o for_o ever_o must_v sustain_v of_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o fruition_n of_o he_o in_o glory_n the_o other_o be_v of_o a_o unspeakable_a ragious_a pain_n which_o beside_o their_o loss_n they_o must_v for_o ever_o endure_v the_o first_o be_v intimate_v by_o get_v you_o away_o from_o i_o the_o second_o by_o that_o which_o follow_v of_o everlasting_a fire_n which_o two_o punishment_n of_o loss_n and_o pain_n join_v with_o eternity_n cause_n in_o the_o damn_a a_o utter_a desperation_n and_o rage_n and_o those_o also_o eternal_a even_o as_o slave_n when_o they_o be_v condemn_v to_o the_o galley_n or_o to_o grind_v in_o mill_n or_o the_o like_a slavery_n all_o their_o life_n time_n be_v settle_v and_o establish_v in_o that_o state_n of_o misery_n as_o
33._o l._n 3._o c._n 43.44_o l_o 2._o cont_n gauden_n c._n 3_o l._n de_fw-fr untco_fw-mi bap_n ●●s_o c_o 15._o ep_n 48._o l._n 2._o cont_n pet●l●_n c._n 19_o as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o author_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o they_o must_v therefore_o show_v some_o just_a cause_n why_o they_o go_v forth_o and_o separate_v themselves_o for_o as_o s._n augustine_n allude_v to_o the_o holy_a proverb_n c._n 30._o often_o object_v against_o the_o donatist_n the_o evil_a child_n call_v himself_o just_a but_o he_o can_v not_o excuse_v his_o go_v forth_o and_o in_o another_o place_n you_o must_v come_v and_o give_v a_o account_n of_o your_o separation_n but_o none_o of_o they_o have_v a_o just_a cause_n nor_o can_v give_v a_o better_a account_n of_o their_o separation_n than_o those_o who_o they_o confess_v to_o be_v false_a church_n therefore_o they_o be_v all_o false_a church_n i_o have_v now_o sufficient_o perform_v one_o thing_n which_o i_o promise_v in_o the_o title_n of_o this_o book_n religion_n the_o verity_n of_o the_o roma_fw-it ●e_v cathelike_n faith_n be_v demonstrate_v by_o industion_n from_o a●l_a other_o religion_n to_o wit_n to_o demonstrate_v by_o induction_n from_o all_o the_o religion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o verity_n of_o the_o roman_a catholic_a faith_n as_o for_o the_o atheist_n he_o ought_v indeed_o to_o be_v exclude_v from_o all_o speech_n of_o religion_n for_o that_o he_o have_v none_o yet_o his_o prophanesse_n be_v disproove_v in_o the_o first_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o which_o the_o apostle_n lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n say_v i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o pagan_n religion_n be_v disproove_v in_o the_o same_o article_n in_o that_o he_o believe_v not_o in_o one_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n the_o jewish_a and_o turkish_a sect_n be_v disproove_v in_o the_o second_o article_n for_o that_o they_o believe_v not_o in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n all_o sect_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v disproove_v in_o that_o they_o have_v break_v this_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o catholic_a church_n disobey_v its_o authority_n in_o the_o lawful_a head_n and_o pastor_n of_o it_o let_v they_o harken_v to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 17._o deut_n 17._o if_o thou_o perceive_v that_o the_o judgement_n with_o thou_o be_v hard_a and_o doubtful_a etc._n etc._n thou_o shall_v come_v to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o levitical_a stock_n and_o to_o the_o judge_n that_o shall_v be_v at_o that_o time_n and_o thou_o shall_v do_v whatsoever_o they_o that_o be_v precedent_n of_o the_o place_n which_o our_o lord_n shall_v choose_v shall_v say_v and_o teach_v thou_o according_a to_o his_o law_n and_o thou_o shall_v follow_v their_o sentence_n neither_o shall_v thou_o decline_v to_o the_o right_a hand_n nor_o to_o the_o left_a hand_n but_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v proud_a refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n which_o at_o that_o time_n minister_v to_o our_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o judge_n that_o man_n shall_v die_v here_o now_o i_o cry_v to_o all_o those_o christian_n that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n grecian_n arian_n &c._n &c._n and_o to_o all_o the_o several_a church_n of_o protestant_n and_o especial_o to_o you_o my_o very_a dear_a countryman_n for_o who_o soul_n i_o have_v long_o hazard_v my_o corporal_a life_n you_o have_v contemn_v this_o great_a authority_n or_o rather_o a_o great_a than_o it_o be_v you_o have_v refuse_v to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o priest_n not_o of_o the_o levitical_a stock_n but_o of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n to_o wit_v the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o pastor_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o his_o pastor_n who_o govern_v the_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v then_o actual_o govern_v it_o when_o your_o church_n begin_v these_o you_o know_v you_o have_v disobey_v and_o stand_v still_o disobedient_a unto_o general_a counsel_n have_v declare_v against_o you_o all_o and_o especial_o against_o the_o several_a sect_n of_o protestant_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n consist_v of_o two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o five_o father_n beside_o the_o most_o eminent_a doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o roman_a catholik_o obey_v this_o council_n in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o you_o disobey_v it_o disobedience_n to_o the_o levitical_a priest_n and_o priest_n by_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v punish_v with_o death_n and_o your_o disobedience_n i_o be_o sorry_a with_o all_o my_o hart_n but_o i_o have_v no_o scruple_n to_o speak_v it_o shall_v without_o doubt_n if_o you_o repent_v not_o be_v punish_v with_o eternal_a death_n therefore_o i_o conjure_v you_o by_o the_o sweet_a merit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o you_o believe_v and_o who_o you_o expect_v to_o be_v your_o judge_n to_o reflect_v upon_o your_o soul_n and_o upon_o true_a religion_n call_v to_o mind_n how_o your_o church_n begin_v and_o how_o schism_n and_o heresy_n begin_v and_o if_o you_o find_v as_o you_o shall_v easy_o find_v that_o you_o have_v begin_v after_o the_o very_a same_o manner_n as_o they_o in_o disobedience_n to_o the_o head_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o all_o but_o your_o own_o will_n your_o beginner_n be_v as_o core_n 16._o nu._n 16._o dathan_n and_o abiron_n that_o begin_v division_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n their_o follower_n that_o live_v with_o they_o be_v as_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o former_a who_o god_n destroy_v also_o with_o they_o and_o you_o rise_v up_o to_o maintain_v their_o disobedience_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a and_o go_v be_v like_a to_o those_o who_o after_o their_o death_n rise_v up_o to_o justify_v their_o cause_n and_o be_v therefore_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n consume_v with_o fire_n forsake_v their_o company_n desert_n that_o unlawful_a cause_n and_o return_v again_o into_o the_o sheepfold_a of_o christ_n if_o you_o desire_v to_o be_v save_v the_o ten_o article_n forgiveness_n of_o sin_n none_o can_v right_o consider_v these_o word_n as_o make_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v a_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o he_o must_v needs_o conceive_v some_o great_a mystery_n to_o be_v contain_v in_o they_o they_o only_o to_o profess_v that_o god_n can_v or_o do_v forgive_v sin_n neither_o can_v he_o in_o reason_n understande_v any_o other_o thing_n then_o that_o there_o be_v power_n of_o forgive_a sin_n in_o that_o church_n which_o they_o have_v new_o profess_v this_o be_v indeed_o a_o gift_n and_o privilege_n worthy_a to_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o public_a creed_n christ_n after_o his_o resurrection_n before_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n appear_v to_o his_o apostle_n and_o breathe_v upon_o they_o say_v 20._o io._n 20._o receive_v you_o the_o holy_a ghost_n who_o sin_n you_o shall_v forgive_v they_o be_v forgive_v and_o who_o you_o shall_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v this_o be_v a_o mystery_n which_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v great_a reason_n to_o remember_v and_o often_o to_o inculcate_v unto_o her_o people_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n have_v profess_v their_o belief_n in_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o the_o next_o place_n will_v commemorate_v this_o gift_n and_o power_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n that_o with_o gratitude_n we_o may_v remember_v it_o and_o make_v good_a use_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o great_a work_n say_v s._n 52._o aug._n tract_n 52._o augustine_n to_o make_v a_o evil_a man_n good_a then_o to_o make_v the_o world_n of_o nothing_o yet_o it_o be_v give_v unto_o man_n to_o do_v this_o great_a work_n it_o be_v give_v i_o say_v unto_o man_n for_o it_o be_v not_o of_o his_o own_o power_n but_o of_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n god_n only_o of_o his_o own_o natural_a power_n can_v forgive_v sin_n 43._o esa_fw-la 43._o i_o be_o he_o that_o take_v clean_o away_o thy_o iniquity_n but_o he_o can_v if_o he_o will_v give_v that_o power_n unto_o man_n the_o apostle_n have_v that_o power_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n as_o they_o have_v of_o he_o to_o work_v many_o miracle_n which_o be_v as_o hard_a and_o unpossible_a to_o nature_n as_o to_o forgive_v sin_n judge_n of_o themselves_o have_v not_o power_n to_o judge_v but_o when_o the_o king_n make_v they_o judge_n and_o give_v they_o power_n than_o they_o have_v power_n and_o may_v exercise_v it_o and_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o be_v good_a and_o valid_a because_o the_o king_n who_o give_v they_o that_o power_n set_v they_o in_o his_o own_o place_n give_v they_o to_o represent_v his_o own_o person_n and_o ratify_v the_o
sentence_n which_o they_o give_v so_o priest_n be_v make_v of_o god_n the_o judge_n over_o soul_n they_o bear_v his_o person_n they_o forgive_v sin_n and_o who_o sin_n they_o forgive_v upon_o earth_n those_o be_v forgive_v by_o he_o in_o heaven_n by_o sin_n we_o become_v debtor_n to_o god_n he_o be_v the_o creditor_n who_o only_o of_o himself_o can_v forgive_v but_o he_o substitute_v other_o to_o forgive_v in_o his_o name_n his_o substitute_n can_v valid_o forgive_v and_o the_o substitute_n of_o god_n be_v his_o priest_n to_o say_v that_o man_n can_v not_o have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n be_v that_o which_o the_o jew_n object_v against_o christ_n and_o which_o he_o answer_v and_o disproove_v by_o a_o miracle_n show_v by_o it_o that_o himself_o not_o only_o as_o he_o be_v god_n but_o also_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n can_v forgive_v sin_n a_o lame_a and_o impotent_a man_n be_v bring_v unto_o he_o he_o say_v 9_o mat._n 9_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o and_o when_o the_o jew_n hear_v those_o word_n present_o they_o say_v that_o he_o blaspheme_v as_o though_o the_o power_n of_o forgive_a sin_n have_v be_v so_o proper_a to_o god_n that_o he_o can_v not_o have_v impart_v it_o to_o man_n but_o they_o shall_v see_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o blasphemy_n in_o his_o word_n wherefore_o think_v you_o evil_a in_o you_o heart_n say_v christ_n whether_o be_v easy_a to_o say_v thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o or_o to_o say_v arise_v and_o walk_v but_o that_o you_o may_v know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v power_n on_o earth_n to_o forgive_v sin_n arise_v take_v up_o thy_o bed_n and_o go_v into_o thy_o house_n and_o he_o aroze_v and_o go_v into_o his_o house_n and_o the_o multitude_n see_v it_o glorified_a god_n that_o have_v give_v such_o power_n to_o man_n now_o let_v none_o ever_o say_v that_o man_n can_v have_v power_n to_o forgive_v sin_n it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o blasphemy_n or_o injury_n to_o god_n to_o say_v that_o he_o give_v power_n to_o man_n to_o forgive_v sin_n that_o to_o say_v the_o contrary_n be_v a_o blasphemy_n and_o injury_n to_o he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o can_v not_o or_o do_v not_o give_v that_o power_n to_o man_n for_o as_o the_o honour_n and_o power_n of_o the_o king_n be_v not_o diminish_v but_o rather_o his_o love_n and_o care_n over_o his_o subject_n be_v demonstrate_v in_o make_v judge_n to_o conserve_v justice_n and_o order_n among_o they_o and_o especial_o in_o give_v power_n to_o his_o judge_n to_o pardon_v offence_n do_v against_o he_o so_o be_v it_o a_o special_a demonstration_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n unto_o man_n to_o give_v power_n to_o priest_n to_o forgive_v sin_n which_o be_v commit_v against_o he_o and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v we_o here_o to_o profess_v to_o wit_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n by_o power_n give_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o that_o consider_v the_o evil_a of_o mortal_a sin_n how_o that_o it_o wound_v and_o quite_o kill_v our_o soul_n leave_v they_o deprive_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o guilty_a of_o the_o pain_n of_o hell_n will_v esteem_v great_o of_o this_o power_n and_o will_v think_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n which_o so_o much_o behove_v a_o sinner_n as_o the_o right_a application_n of_o that_o power_n to_o himself_o 27._o esa_n 27._o this_o be_v the_o end_n and_o fruit_n of_o all_o that_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o say_v the_o prophet_n by_o this_o our_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v as_o a_o dead_a and_o filthy_a carrion_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o life_n of_o grace_n make_v clean_o and_o beautiful_a and_o all_o the_o happiness_n of_o future_a life_n also_o become_v then_o due_a to_o they_o this_o we_o shall_v learn_v how_o it_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n where_o the_o benefit_n of_o it_o be_v obtain_v the_o eleaventh_n article_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n how_o necessary_a this_o article_n be_v to_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o christian_n doctrine_n it_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v not_o only_o profess_v it_o but_o also_o prove_v it_o s._n paul_n proove_v the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n if_o say_v he_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a neither_o be_v christ_n rise_v again_o 15._o cor._n 1_o 15._o and_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v again_o then_o vain_a be_v our_o preach_v vain_a also_o be_v your_o faith_n and_o he_o declare_v and_o confirm_v it_o by_o the_o similitude_n of_o corn_n which_o corrupt_v in_o the_o seed_n rise_v up_o fresh_a and_o fair_a corn_n again_o with_o these_o and_o the_o like_a argument_n he_o dispute_v against_o certain_a man_n that_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n 2.2_o tim._n 2.2_o as_o hymenaeus_n and_o philetus_n who_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o resurreation_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n christ_n also_o himself_o dispute_v with_o the_o saducaean_n about_o this_o point_n and_o confirm_v in_o fact_n the_o truth_n of_o it_o when_o he_o raze_v lazarus_n to_o life_n who_o although_o he_o have_v be_v four_o day_n dead_a and_o lay_v then_o stink_v in_o the_o monument_n yet_o when_o christ_n call_v he_o hear_v 11._o io._n 11._o and_o obey_v come_v forth_o fresh_a and_o lively_a holy_a job_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o all_o his_o assiction_n comfort_v himself_o with_o these_o word_n 19_o job_n 19_o i_o know_v that_o my_o redeemer_n live_v and_o in_o the_o last_o day_n i_o shall_v rise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o i_o shall_v be_v compass_v again_o with_o my_o skin_n and_o in_o my_o flesh_n i_o shall_v see_v god_n thus_o do_v this_o holy_a man_n solace_v himself_o with_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o he_o say_v he_o have_v lay_v up_o in_o his_o bosom_n use_v it_o as_o a_o cordial_a and_o antidore_v against_o his_o great_a misery_n our_o soul_n and_o body_n desire_v by_o nature_n to_o be_v unite_v together_o for_o the_o complete_a and_o entire_a constitute_v of_o man_n it_o stand_v with_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v once_o come_v together_o again_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o bless_a may_v enjoy_v their_o desire_n and_o be_v satiate_v in_o the_o natural_a appetite_n which_o they_o have_v unto_o their_o body_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n be_v mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o be_v take_v by_o the_o ancient_a philosopher_n as_o it_o be_v for_o the_o same_o because_o such_o be_v the_o connexion_n betwixt_o they_o that_o by_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n be_v inser_v for_o if_o the_o soul_n be_v immortal_a and_o have_v a_o natural_a appetite_n to_o the_o body_n as_o be_v ereat_v to_o constitute_v man_n consist_v of_o both_o soul_n and_o body_n then_o that_o appetite_n must_v once_o be_v satiate_v by_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n after_o death_n and_o reunion_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o it_o again_o and_o so_o take_v away_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n and_o you_o take_v away_o the_o immortality_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o then_o all_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o hope_n of_o future_a life_n be_v take_v away_o with_o it_o our_o soul_n be_v mortal_a with_o our_o body_n and_o therefore_o s._n paul_n if_o i_o fight_v with_o beast_n at_o ephesus_n what_o do_v it_o profit_v i_o 1.15_o cor._n 1.15_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o again_o let_v we_o eat_v and_o drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n we_o shall_v die_v and_o therefore_o s._n chrysostome_n call_v the_o saducaean_n who_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n the_o most_o pernicious_a haeretik_n that_o ever_o be_v s._n ambrose_n have_v prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o those_o who_o have_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o by_o reason_n which_o he_o call_v evident_a conclude_v all_o in_o this_o plane_n and_o certain_a truth_n that_o the_o corruption_n of_o seed_n and_o production_n which_o we_o see_v of_o new_a thing_n be_v unto_o god_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o old_a that_o which_o we_o believe_v by_o this_o article_n be_v that_o the_o very_a same_o body_n which_o live_v before_o although_o never_o so_o much_o corrupt_v shall_v be_v unite_v to_o their_o soul_n again_o and_o remain_v for_o ever_o with_o they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v before_o it_o be_v not_o a_o resurrection_n but_o a_o production_n of_o a_o new_a thing_n and_o that_o this_o resurrection_n be_v general_a to_o all_o 1.15_o cor._n 1.15_o according_a to_o the_o
apostle_n as_o in_o adam_n all_o die_n so_o in_o christ_n all_o shall_v be_v make_v alive_a neither_o do_v his_o word_n to_o the_o thessalonian_o make_v against_o this_o 1.4_o thes_n 1.4_o where_o he_o say_v the_o dead_a that_o be_v in_o christ_n shall_v rise_v again_o first_o then_o we_o that_o live_v that_o be_v leave_v with_o all_o shall_v be_v take_v up_o with_o they_o in_o the_o cloud_n to_o meet_v christ_n for_o those_o that_o be_v live_v on_o the_o earth_n when_o christ_n shall_v come_v to_o judgement_n shall_v die_v and_o rise_v again_o to_o receive_v their_o sentence_n and_o of_o this_o there_o can_v be_v no_o doubt_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o be_v general_a to_o all_o 2.5_o cor._n 2.5_o that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o proper_a thing_n of_o the_o body_n according_a as_o he_o have_v do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n all_o man_n be_v constitute_v of_o body_n and_o either_o serve_v or_o not_o serve_v god_n by_o it_o must_v rise_v again_o that_o they_o may_v receive_v in_o their_o body_n according_a to_o the_o work_n which_o they_o do_v in_o they_o s._n 19_o de_fw-fr ciu_o d●●_n l._n 22._o c._n 19_o augustin_n have_v declare_v with_o what_o beauty_n and_o ornament_n the_o body_n of_o the_o just_a shall_v rise_v again_o free_a from_o the_o deformity_n and_o imperfection_n which_o before_o they_o have_v they_o shall_v have_v no_o defect_n of_o litlenes_n weakness_n crookedness_n etc._n etc._n there_o shall_v be_v no_o excess_n in_o bigness_n the_o fat_a and_o corpulent_a shall_v diminish_v of_o their_o bulk_n and_o those_o that_o want_v of_o their_o natural_a pitch_n shall_v come_v to_o their_o perfect_a size_n and_o stature_n there_o shall_v be_v then_o no_o tenderness_n of_o infant_n no_o feebleness_n of_o old_a age_n no_o sickness_n lameness_n or_o infirmity_n in_o any_o part_n they_o shall_v rise_v all_o full_a of_o joy_n and_o content_n neither_o as_o young_a nor_o as_o old_a but_o in_o a_o middle_n perfect_a age_n the_o hair_n and_o other_o ornament_n of_o the_o body_n neither_o too_o much_o nor_o too_o little_a all_o indecency_n be_v change_v into_o comeliness_n and_o decency_n that_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n may_v both_o together_o praise_v their_o creator_n as_o well_o in_o corporal_a as_o in_o spiritual_a glory_n the_o twelve_o article_n life_n everlasting_a because_o life_n be_v the_o most_o precious_a of_o all_o thing_n to_o we_o all_o the_o happiness_n which_o we_o enjoy_v in_o this_o world_n be_v enjoy_v by_o life_n and_o lose_v by_o death_n therefore_o the_o everlasting_a felicity_n of_o heaven_n be_v call_v everlasting_a life_n and_o the_o loss_n of_o it_o may_v very_o well_o be_v term_v a_o everlasting_a death_n the_o eternal_a separation_n of_o our_o soul_n from_o god_n be_v infinite_o more_o miserable_a to_o they_o then_o their_o separation_n from_o their_o miserable_a body_n and_o therefore_o as_o die_a creature_n carne_fw-la and_o anhele_v for_o life_n so_o ought_v we_o to_o earn_v and_o anhele_v after_o that_o bless_a life_n some_o time_n that_o happy_a state_n be_v call_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n the_o house_n of_o god_n paradise_n the_o holy_a city_n thus_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o all_o to_o enamour_v we_o with_o it_o the_o chief_a felicity_n of_o the_o bless_a which_o be_v call_v their_o essential_a bliss_n consist_v in_o the_o clear_a vision_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o perfect_a knowledge_n which_o they_o have_v of_o god_n that_o they_o know_v he_o with_o full_a content_n as_o one_o do_v his_o friend_n when_o he_o be_v present_a with_o he_o 17._o cor_fw-la 1.13_o io._n 17._o and_o behold_v he_o face_n to_o face_n we_o see_v now_o by_o a_o glass_n in_o a_o dark_a sort_n but_o then_o face_n to_o face_n say_v the_o apostle_n and_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v life_n everlasting_a that_o they_o know_v thou_o the_o only_a true_a god_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v give_v to_o they_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o grace_n for_o as_o they_o die_v in_o a_o high_a state_n of_o grace_n so_o shall_v they_o receive_v a_o high_a reward_n of_o glory_n the_o scripture_n frequent_o declare_v that_o the_o reward_n be_v to_o be_v give_v according_a to_o our_o work_n 1.3_o cor_fw-la 1.3_o every_o one_o say_v the_o apostle_n shall_v receive_v his_o reward_n according_a to_o his_o labour_n virgni_fw-la luth_n in_o nativit_fw-la maria_fw-la virgni_fw-la by_o which_o we_o may_v see_v how_o false_a that_o inference_n of_o luther_n be_v christ_n justice_n be_v impute_v unto_o every_o one_o alike_o therefore_o every_o one_o be_v as_o holy_a as_o our_o bless_a lady_n for_o christ_n justice_n be_v impute_v unto_o every_o one_o in_o that_o degree_n in_o which_o every_o one_o appli_v it_o to_o himself_o and_o unto_o all_o the_o saint_n alike_o so_o far_o as_o to_o obtain_v glory_n io._n s._n aug_n tract_n 67._o in_o io._n but_o not_o in_o the_o same_o degree_n s._n augustine_n shall_v answer_v he_o the_o penny_n indeed_o be_v give_v unto_o every_o one_o alike_o but_o the_o many_o mansion_n signify_v the_o diverse_a dignity_n of_o merit_n in_o that_o one_o eternal_a life_n and_o present_o after_o he_o cit_v the_o apostle_n cor._n 1.15_o where_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n he_o say_v one_o glory_n of_o the_o sun_n another_o glory_n of_o the_o moon_n and_o another_o of_o the_o star_n for_o star_n differ_v from_o star_n in_o glory_n so_o say_v he_o be_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a the_o saint_n as_o star_n have_v different_a mansion_n ultime_fw-la greg._n mor._n l._n 1._o c._n ultime_fw-la and_o different_a clarity_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n s._n gregory_n confirm_v s._n augustins_n word_n as_o it_o be_v repeat_v the_o very_a same_o over_o again_o because_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n have_v different_a work_n in_o this_o life_n in_o the_o next_o without_o doubt_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o difference_n of_o dignity_n and_o therefore_o in_o my_o father_n house_n there_o be_v many_o mansion_n now_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o greatness_n of_o this_o glory_n i_o know_v not_o how_o to_o begin_v for_o it_o be_v neither_o in_o the_o tongue_n of_o man_n to_o speak_v nor_o in_o his_o hart_n to_o think_v the_o liberality_n of_o god_n in_o reward_v of_o his_o friend_n the_o saint_n be_v then_o unite_v in_o perfect_a friendship_n with_o he_o and_o be_v receive_v into_o his_o innermost_a tabernacle_n where_o they_o shall_v never_o fear_v to_o loose_v his_o grace_n nor_o their_o place_n of_o glory_n and_o by_o that_o near_a and_o intimate_a union_n with_o god_n the_o divine_a power_n wisdom_n and_o goodness_n appear_v so_o resplendent_o in_o they_o that_o even_o as_o iron_n when_o it_o be_v red_a hot_a seem_v to_o be_v all_o fire_n by_o the_o fire_n which_o it_o contain_v so_o the_o saint_n by_o that_o bright_a glory_n and_o sublime_a light_n by_o which_o god_n dwell_v in_o they_o and_o join_v himself_o to_o they_o seem_v to_o have_v put_v on_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o god_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o great_a comfort_n in_o the_o way_n of_o virtue_n and_o a_o encouragement_n to_o undergo_v labour_n for_o god_n sake_n to_o think_v of_o the_o reward_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v in_o the_o end_n david_n a_o young_a man_n come_v into_o king_n saul_n camp_n to_o visit_v his_o brethren_n that_o be_v soldier_n in_o it_o see_v the_o huge_a army_n of_o their_o enemy_n over_o against_o they_o and_o a_o mighty_a giant_n stand_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o both_o formidable_o arm_v challenge_v all_o israël_n to_o a_o single_a duel_n with_o he_o and_o although_o he_o see_v all_o the_o israëlit_v to_o fly_v from_o his_o face_n forvery_n fear_n yet_o hear_v by_o chance_n of_o a_o great_a reward_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o any_o that_o shall_v kill_v he_o to_o wit_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v the_o king_n daughter_n to_o wife_n and_o other_o thing_n he_o hearken_v after_o it_o and_o when_o he_o have_v inform_v himself_o well_o and_o understand_v that_o such_o be_v indeed_o the_o king_n promise_n his_o spirit_n be_v raise_v with_o the_o hope_n of_o reward_n and_o his_o hart_n be_v on_o fire_n to_o be_v in_o hand_n with_o the_o giant_n and_o although_o he_o know_v neither_o how_o to_o wear_v armour_n nor_o manage_v arm_n but_o without_o either_o sword_n or_o spear_n or_o any_o defence_n for_o himself_o be_v to_o venture_v his_o life_n with_o a_o old_a try_a soldier_n he_o fear_v nothing_o but_o go_v down_o unto_o he_o as_o though_o it_o have_v be_v to_o beat_v a_o dog_n and_o see_v his_o enemy_n to_o approach_v he_o run_v towards_o he_o throw_v a_o stone_n only_o in_o his_o face_n and_o close_v present_o with_o he_o with_o his_o own_o sword_n he_o cut_v of_o his_o head_n so_o in_o our_o spiritual_a combat_n
he_o first_o begin_v to_o conceal_v although_o he_o have_v confess_v they_o he_o must_v confess_v they_o all_o over_o again_o with_o those_o which_o he_o conceal_v for_o although_o they_o be_v confess_v they_o be_v not_o forgive_v the_o devil_n no_o doubt_n but_o labour_v all_o he_o can_v to_o hinder_v the_o fruit_n of_o this_o sacrament_n by_o which_o he_o lose_v so_o many_o soul_n and_o because_o he_o prevail_v sometime_o with_o such_o as_o i_o have_v mention_v i_o will_v speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o for_o their_o good_a that_o they_o may_v abhor_v this_o sin_n first_o i_o tell_v they_o that_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o only_a remedy_n which_o god_n have_v ordain_v for_o actual_a sin_n our_o soul_n be_v first_o lose_v by_o original_a sin_n and_o by_o baptism_n they_o be_v save_v from_o that_o shipwreck_n but_o fall_v after_o baptism_n into_o actual_a sin_n there_o be_v no_o hope_n to_o be_v save_v but_o by_o due_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n 8._o hiero._n ep_v 8._o ad_fw-la domerriad_n amb._n ad_fw-la virg_n lap_n c._n 8._o and_o therefore_o saint_n and_o spiritual_a man_n common_o call_v it_o the_o second_o plank_n of_o salvation_n in_o the_o shipwreck_n of_o our_o soul_n tell_v i_o then_o o_o fainthearted_a catholic_a that_o be_v afraid_a to_o confess_v thy_o sin_n if_o that_o thou_o be_v float_v on_o the_o wave_n of_o the_o sea_n upon_o a_o good_a and_o sure_a plank_n will_v thou_o be_v overcome_v with_o fear_n to_o forsake_v it_o why_o then_o be_v thou_o overcome_v with_o fear_n to_o conceal_v thy_o sin_n in_o that_o pitiful_a state_n of_o damnation_n see_v that_o by_o conceal_v they_o thou_o do_v let_v go_v the_o plank_n in_o which_o be_v all_o thy_o hope_n and_o without_o which_o thou_o sinke_v down_o and_o be_v sure_a to_o perish_v thou_o have_v suffer_v shipwreck_n by_o mortal_a sin_n will_v thou_o let_v go_v thy_o save_a plank_n and_o perish_v in_o the_o wave_n thou_o be_v wound_v mortal_o and_o be_v sick_a unto_o death_n if_o thou_o discover_v not_o thy_o wound_n thou_o die_v with_o out_o remedy_n will_v thou_o languish_v unto_o death_n and_o wilful_o refuse_v all_o help_n thou_o have_v a_o physician_n that_o can_v cure_v thou_o and_o that_o as_o private_o as_o thou_o can_v desire_v and_o with_o as_o little_a shame_n to_o thou_o but_o thou_o must_v either_o tell_v thy_o disease_n and_o show_v thy_o wound_n or_o die_v thus_o do_v the_o holy_a father_n declare_v the_o necessity_n of_o entire_a confession_n further_o if_o thou_o dissemble_v with_o the_o priest_n thou_o dissemble_v with_o god_n and_o add_v sin_n unto_o sin_n thou_o wound_v thy_o soul_n with_o a_o new_a and_o deep_a wound_n and_o with_o a_o sin_n which_o be_v most_o opposite_a to_o grace_v and_o to_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o any_o sin_n and_o that_o very_a sin_n which_o now_o thou_o will_v not_o confess_v private_o thou_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o confess_v it_o one_o day_n in_o the_o sight_n and_o hear_n of_o all_o the_o world_n when_o the_o devil_n shall_v accuse_v thou_o public_o say_v i_o get_v he_o to_o commit_v such_o a_o sin_n and_o to_o conceal_v it_o in_o confession_n i_o accuse_v he_o of_o the_o sin_n and_o of_o a_o sacrilegious_a confession_n and_o christ_n will_v then_o be_v ashamed_a of_o thou_o before_o his_o angel_n that_o be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o before_o thy_o ghostly_a father_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v condemn_v as_o guilty_a of_o both_o sin_n and_o shall_v go_v among_o the_o damn_a this_o be_v all_o that_o thou_o shall_v get_v by_o thy_o shame_n for_o in_o this_o world_n thou_o do_v get_v nothing_o at_o all_o other_o sin_n when_o they_o be_v commit_v bring_v either_o some_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n with_o they_o but_o this_o have_v neither_o profit_n nor_o pleasure_n in_o it_o but_o even_o then_o when_o thou_o commit_v it_o thou_o have_v a_o inward_a horurour_n and_o pain_n to_o think_v of_o the_o loss_n which_o they_o tho_o sustein_a and_o of_o the_o comfort_n of_o a_o good_a confession_n and_o how_o greevous_o thou_o wound_v thy_o soul_n with_o a_o new_a and_o more_o grievous_a wound_n if_o thou_o do_v see_v thy_o utter_a enemy_n lay_v pitiful_o wound_v in_o danger_n of_o death_n and_o the_o surgeon_n dress_v he_o and_o bind_v up_o his_o wound_n can_v thou_o find_v in_o thy_o hart_n to_o come_v to_o he_o and_o tear_v of_o his_o plaster_n to_o wound_n he_o again_o with_o a_o new_a and_o worse_a wound_n such_o a_o enemy_n thou_o be_v unto_o thyself_o when_o be_v at_o confession_n under_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n thou_o hide_v any_o mortal_a sin_n thou_o abuse_v the_o only_a remedy_n of_o thy_o soul_n and_o be_v wound_v and_o then_o in_o cure_n thou_o tear_v of_o the_o plaster_n and_o wound_v thyself_o again_o with_o a_o new_a and_o more_o grievous_a mortal_a sin_n and_o such_o a_o one_o as_o in_o itself_o be_v contrary_a to_o all_o remedy_n it_o be_v very_o remarkable_a to_o this_o purpose_n that_o which_o happen_v not_o long_o since_o in_o a_o city_n of_o spain_n a_o notorious_a malefactor_n be_v sentence_v to_o die_v be_v put_v into_o the_o place_n of_o retirement_n which_o they_o have_v in_o the_o prison_n for_o condemn_a person_n to_o prepare_v themselves_o in_o for_o their_o death_n and_o come_v to_o confession_n he_o begin_v to_o be_v trouble_v and_o can_v not_o go_v on_o but_o make_v strange_a gesture_n and_o show_n of_o affrightment_n when_o he_o will_v have_v confess_v some_o sin_n the_o priest_n who_o be_v my_o very_a charitable_a good_a friend_n and_o who_o tell_v i_o himself_o all_o that_o i_o be_o now_o relate_v perceive_v it_o and_o ask_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o with_o much_o difficulty_n at_o last_o he_o answer_v and_o tell_v he_o plane_o that_o the_o devil_n be_v there_o and_o threaten_v he_o that_o he_o dare_v not_o confess_v at_o which_o the_o priest_n roze_v up_o and_o with_o the_o sign_n the_o cros_n vanquish_v he_o but_o the_o devil_n who_o use_v not_o to_o yield_v at_o the_o first_o repulse_n return_v again_o and_o at_o the_o confess_v of_o some_o sin_n trouble_v he_o as_o before_o and_o the_o priest_n again_o vanquish_v he_o and_o thus_o return_v several_a time_n he_o put_v the_o poor_a man_n into_o such_o a_o amaze_n and_o fear_n that_o he_o dare_v not_o confess_v but_o make_v a_o end_n conceal_v some_o of_o his_o sin_n the_o priest_n give_v sentence_n of_o absolution_n but_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a and_o of_o no_o value_n as_o a_o judge_n misinform_v the_o party_n remain_v guilty_a of_o all_o his_o former_a sin_n and_o of_o one_o more_o and_o that_o perhaps_o great_a than_o any_o which_o he_o have_v to_o confess_v that_o night_n the_o devil_n appear_v unto_o he_o all_o in_o flame_n threaten_v he_o ●ot_n to_o confess_v such_o and_o such_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v conceal_v and_o with_o all_o he_o command_v he_o to_o throw_v away_o that_o which_o he_o have_v about_o his_o neck_n which_o be_v a_o little_a cros_n and_o image_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n which_o the_o priest_n send_v to_o a_o brother_n of_o his_o own_o live_v then_o above_o a_o thousand_o mile_n from_o he_o who_o wear_v they_o and_o after_o some_o year_n show_v they_o to_o i_o in_o what_o a_o terror_n may_v we_o imagine_v that_o man_n then_o to_o have_v be_v and_o fearful_a perplexity_n to_o obey_v or_o to_o disobey_v the_o devil_n command_n he_o think_v they_o then_o to_o be_v his_o only_a arm_n and_o see_v that_o if_o he_o throw_v they_o away_o he_o disarm_v himself_o and_o on_o the_o otherside_n he_o fear_v his_o threaten_n if_o he_o obey_v not_o but_o he_o choose_v for_o better_a to_o disobey_v he_o and_o it_o be_v a_o happy_a disobedience_n for_o his_o proud_a enemy_n confound_v with_o it_o vanish_v away_o present_o with_o out_o hurt_v he_o the_o man_n expect_v until_o morning_n long_v to_o see_v the_o priest_n return_v who_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o see_v he_o run_v present_o to_o he_o and_o glasp_v he_o in_o his_o arm_n he_o beseech_v he_o to_o hear_v his_o confession_n again_o and_o then_o he_o make_v a_o better_a confession_n declare_v entire_o the_o sin_n which_o he_o have_v conceal_v and_o the_o sacrilege_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v in_o conceal_v they_o and_o relate_v all_o that_o have_v pass_v with_o he_o he_o desire_v at_o his_o death_n the_o priest_n to_o tell_v it_o unto_o other_o that_o they_o may_v learn_v by_o he_o to_o make_v good_a confession_n who_o relate_v it_o according_o in_o his_o sermon_n to_o all_o that_o be_v present_a at_o the_o malefactor_n execution_n this_o happen_v in_o a_o place_n of_o spain_n which_o i_o know_v very_o well_o and_o there_o can_v be_v no_o question_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o it_o those_o who_o in_o confession_n conceal_v
deceive_v so_o much_o as_o one_o learned_a priest_n but_o only_o some_o carnal_a and_o simple_a woman_n as_o priest_n be_v above_o angel_n in_o dignity_n so_o it_o be_v fit_v that_o they_o shall_v imitate_v their_o purity_n and_o angel_n neither_o marry_v nor_o be_v marry_v nay_o it_o be_v fit_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v ordain_v they_o to_o be_v above_o angel_n in_o this_o that_o angel_n be_v chaste_a by_o nature_n only_o but_o priest_n be_v chaste_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o by_o vow_n which_o be_v better_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n as_o now_o it_o be_v for_o the_o clergy_n to_o wear_v their_o crown_n shave_v s._n denis_n who_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n make_v mention_v of_o it_o eccl._n hierar_n c._n 6._o s._n beda_n derive_v the_o first_o use_n of_o it_o from_o s._n peter_n it_o represent_v the_o crown_n of_o thorn_n of_o our_o saviour_n it_o denote_v the_o dignity_n of_o priest_n as_o king_n of_o who_o the_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n 1.1_o 2d_o l._n 5._o hist_o aug._n c_o 2d_o may_v cheesly_a be_v understand_v say_v you_o be_v a_o elect_a generation_n a_o kingly_a priesthood_n it_o signifi_v also_o that_o priest_n be_v to_o reject_v all_o vain_a superfluity_n of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o betake_v themselves_o to_o the_o spiritual_a lot_n and_o part_n which_o they_o have_v choose_v of_o matrimony_n matrimony_n be_v declare_v by_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n to_o be_v a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrament_n vitim_fw-la sess_n vitim_fw-la one_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o seven_o sacrament_n of_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n institute_v by_o he_o to_o give_v grace_n and_o therefore_o among_o christian_n it_o be_v absolute_o indissoluble_a which_o as_o a_o contract_n of_o nature_n only_o it_o be_v not_o it_o have_v for_o its_o proper_a effect_n to_o remedy_v the_o unlawful_a concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o to_o give_v grace_n to_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o live_v together_o in_o mutual_a love_n and_o conjugal_a chastity_n and_o to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n it_o be_v call_v by_o s._n 15._o eph._n 15._o paul_n a_o great_a sacrament_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o mystery_n which_o it_o represent_v of_o the_o marriage_n of_o christ_n with_o his_o church_n to_o which_o for_o ever_o he_o have_v espouse_v himself_o and_o as_o a_o good_a husband_n allwais_o love_v it_o teach_v it_o defend_v it_o provide_v for_o it_o and_o remain_v for_o ever_o the_o head_n of_o it_o by_o this_o similitude_n we_o have_v the_o duty_n of_o marriage_n well_o decipher_v and_o man_n and_o wife_n by_o it_o be_v teach_v how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o to_o each_o other_o christ_n love_v his_o church_n with_o a_o infinite_a love_n the_o church_n also_o love_v he_o with_o a_o continual_a and_o never_o interrupt_v love_n christ_n suffer_v for_o his_o church_n give_v even_o his_o life_n to_o gain_v she_o a_o immaculate_a spouse_n the_o church_n also_o suffer_v for_o he_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o her_o child_n that_o in_o her_o victory_n of_o martyrdom_n she_o may_v well_o say_v to_o he_o as_o sephora_n do_v to_o moses_n 4._o exod_n 4._o a_o bloody_a spouse_n thou_o be_v to_o i_o when_o she_o see_v the_o blood_n of_o her_o child_n circumcise_v by_o he_o christ_n as_o a_o good_a husband_n bear_v with_o many_o imperfection_n and_o sin_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o church_n and_o upbraid_v she_o not_o but_o pitty_v she_o and_o further_v the_o amendment_n of_o they_o by_o fair_a mean_n and_o good_a word_n call_v she_o his_o friend_n his_o belove_a his_o fair_a one_o and_o the_o church_n as_o a_o good_a wife_n confess_v her_o fault_n and_o ask_v pardon_n for_o they_o submit_v herself_o more_o humble_a than_o sara_n call_v he_o her_o lord_n her_o master_n her_o saviour_n final_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n allwais_o ready_a to_o mediate_v for_o his_o church_n in_o heaven_n and_o have_v provide_v to_o remain_v also_o with_o she_o in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n allwais_o upon_o earth_n and_o the_o church_n reciprocal_o labour_v for_o he_o give_v sacrament_n offer_v sacrifice_n exhort_v command_a reprehend_v and_o punish_v of_o her_o people_n to_o make_v they_o honour_v he_o thus_o ought_v man_n and_o wife_n to_o live_v together_o in_o continual_a love_n and_o to_o bear_v patient_o and_o content_o together_o the_o tribulation_n of_o marriage_n not_o upbraid_v one_o another_o with_o their_o fault_n but_o with_o wise_a and_o mild_a term_n to_o procure_v the_o amendment_n of_o they_o and_o to_o concur_v together_o in_o all_o thing_n both_o to_o their_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a good_a of_o this_o union_n love_n and_o goodness_n of_o marry_a folk_n depend_v very_o much_o the_o good_a of_o all_o mankind_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v often_o and_o earnest_o commend_v in_o the_o scripture_n in_o the_o first_o marriage_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o paradise_n god_n to_o to_o show_v the_o love_n which_o he_o will_v have_v betwixt_o man_n and_o wife_n will_v frame_v the_o wife_n of_o a_o true_a and_o real_a part_n of_o her_o husband_n body_n and_o not_o of_o his_o hand_n finger_n or_o toe_n not_o so_o intimate_v to_o he_o but_o of_o a_o rib_n of_o his_o side_n near_o to_o his_o ●art_n and_o when_o adam_n awaken_v out_o of_o his_o sleep_n and_o first_o see_v she_o he_o be_v present_o enamour_v with_o a_o holy_a love_n of_o she_o as_o his_o lawful_a wife_n and_o even_o then_o present_o he_o begin_v to_o give_v document_n to_o marry_a folk_n say_v 2._o gen._n 2._o for_o this_o man_n shall_v leave_v his_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o shall_v cleave_v to_o his_o wife_n an●_n they_o shall_v be_v two_o in_o one_o fles_fw-la this_o adam_n speak_v to_o his_o posterity_n who_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n he_o foresee_v and_o will_v forewarn_v of_o mutual_a love_n that_o as_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v but_o one_o in_o flesh_n so_o they_o may_v be_v in_o mind_n and_o will_n according_a together_o to_o take_v a_o part_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o therefore_o adam_n call_v she_o his_o fellow_n companion_n as_o participate_v with_o he_o in_o a_o happy_a and_o good_a company_n all_o dissension_n and_o division_n betwixt_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o itself_o most_o grievous_a even_o as_o the_o divide_n of_o live_a flesh_n which_o bleed_v and_o smart_v on_o both_o side_n or_o as_o the_o cut_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n into_o two_o which_o can_v not_o be_v but_o with_o excessive_a torment_n and_o certain_a death_n so_o the_o division_n and_o dissension_n betwixt_o man_n and_o wife_n be_v allwais_o painful_a on_o both_o side_n and_o if_o it_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o moment_n or_o with_o scandal_n it_o be_v death_n and_o damnation_n to_o their_o soul_n the_o best_a therefore_o be_v to_o reflect_v well_o upon_o the_o inconvenience_n of_o marriage_n before_o hand_n and_o to_o prevent_v they_o young_a folk_n many_o time_n deceive_v themselves_o who_o set_v their_o mind_n too_o earnest_o upon_o marriage_n imagine_v great_a happiness_n and_o nothing_o but_o content_a in_o it_o but_o this_o content_n last_v but_o a_o while_n with_o they_o for_o as_o soon_o as_o they_o feel_v the_o tribulation_n of_o that_o state_n they_o begin_v to_o loathe_v it_o and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o think_v they_o untollerable_a and_o to_o wish_v themselves_o unmarried_a again_o and_o this_o be_v so_o common_a that_o as_o the_o say_n be_v one_o priest_n hat_n can_v unmarry_v will_v have_v work_n enough_o for_o many_o priest_n these_o resemble_v little_a child_n that_o cry_v after_o their_o mother_n they_o will_v not_o be_v quiet_a till_o they_o have_v their_o desire_n and_o within_o a_o while_n they_o begin_v to_o be_v weary_a and_o cry_v to_o be_v back_o again_o marriage_n that_o be_v make_v without_o due_a consideration_n and_o especial_o with_o out_o be_v well_o commend_v to_o god_n have_v many_o time_n the_o like_a issue_n and_o these_o be_v often_o observe_v to_o be_v of_o those_o who_o marry_v very_o young_a who_o indeed_o seldom_o apprehend_v right_o that_o which_o they_o undertake_v but_o what_o remedy_n when_o they_o be_v once_o marry_v there_o be_v then_o none_o but_o in_o true_a virtue_n and_o a_o good_a conscience_n they_o must_v settle_v themselves_o and_o be_v content_v with_o the_o sour_a and_o the_o sweet_a take_v one_o with_o the_o other_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o send_v they_o and_o when_o any_o cros_n happen_v with_o a_o constant_a and_o heroical_a mind_n to_o bear_v it_o for_o god_n sake_n and_o to_o accustom_v themselves_o to_o some_o good_a word_n in_o those_o occasion_n as_o god_n will_v be_v do_v or_o the_o like_a expect_v patient_o
passion_n work_v but_o little_a to_o their_o amendment_n parent_n must_v also_o provide_v for_o their_o child_n with_o a_o moderate_a care_n and_o not_o as_o some_o do_v who_o under_o pretence_n of_o prould_v for_o they_o never_o think_v themselves_o rich_a enough_o these_o aught_o to_o consider_v that_o their_o child_n be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n and_o he_o will_v provide_v for_o they_o if_o they_o serve_v he_o and_o the_o best_a foundation_n of_o riches_n and_o of_o a_o long_a and_o prosperous_a race_n be_v to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n in_o the_o knowledge_n and_o fear_n of_o he_o for_o if_o god_n build_v with_o they_o their_o house_n will_v stand_v many_o poor_a child_n who_o have_v be_v leave_v without_o parent_n have_v prosper_v better_o with_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n than_o other_o have_v do_v with_o large_a revenue_n leave_v they_o final_o parent_n must_v be_v most_o of_o all_o careful_a that_o they_o give_v no_o ill_a example_n to_o their_o child_n this_o be_v that_o upon_o which_o the_o good_a or_o evil_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n very_o much_o depend_v even_o as_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o branch_n depend_v of_o the_o root_n and_o bowl_n of_o the_o tree_n otherwise_o occasion_n be_v give_v for_o child_n to_o learn_v their_o parent_n vice_n and_o to_o teach_v they_o to_o their_o child_n again_o and_o so_o vice_n go_v from_o generation_n to_o generation_n by_o the_o ill_a example_n of_o parent_n and_o as_o the_o link_n of_o a_o chain_n be_v draw_v by_o one_o another_o and_o fall_v one_o after_o another_o so_o father_n draw_v their_o child_n down_o into_o sin_n after_o they_o that_o for_o many_o generation_n they_o come_v in_o the_o end_n to_o meet_v all_o in_o hell_n i_o et_fw-fr parent_n and_o child_n often_o read_v the_o book_n of_o toby_n they_o have_v there_o a_o example_n of_o a_o good_a father_n and_o of_o a_o good_a son_n and_o god_n bless_v they_o both_o the_o five_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o this_o as_o all_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n have_v its_o proper_a sense_n for_o as_o s._n aug._n the_o ciu_o c._n 20._o say_v we_o be_v not_o forbid_v here_o to_o kill_v meat_n for_o our_o sustenance_n nor_o to_o kill_v man_n in_o our_o own_o defence_n as_o in_o a_o just_a war_n or_o for_o execution_n of_o justice_n upon_o malefactor_n because_o nature_n allow_v and_o require_v these_o thing_n god_n do_v not_o disallow_v of_o they_o some_o also_o by_o particular_a inspiration_n of_o god_n have_v lawful_o kill_v as_o moses_n who_o although_o he_o be_v the_o mild_a man_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o when_o he_o see_v a_o infidel_n heathen_a beat_n one_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n move_v with_o a_o holy_a zeal_n he_o kill_v he_o and_o bury_v he_o in_o the_o sand_n this_o be_v lawful_a as_o be_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n in_o sign_n of_o future_a mystery_n 32._o exod._n 32._o so_o when_o he_o see_v the_o people_n commit_v of_o idolatry_n he_o join_v unto_o he_o those_o that_o be_v of_o our_o lord_n the_o levite_n and_o send_v they_o to_o kill_v the_o idolatrous_a people_n and_o they_o return_v with_o the_o slaughter_n of_o about_o three_o thousand_o man_n he_o commend_v they_o say_v you_o have_v consecrate_v your_o hand_n this_o day_n to_o our_o lord_n that_o blessing_n may_v begve_v to_o you_o phinees_n also_o move_v with_o the_o like_a zeal_n 5._o nu._n 5._o kill_v the_o two_o fornicator_n in_o their_o wicked_a act_n and_o avert_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n by_o it_o god_n the_o author_n of_o the_o commandment_n dispense_v then_o in_o the_o keep_n of_o they_o and_o so_o they_o be_v not_o formal_o break_v that_o which_o be_v forbid_v here_o be_v to_o kill_v upon_o private_a authority_n and_o not_o only_o to_o kill_v anger_n anger_n but_o also_o all_o action_n of_o anger_n by_o which_o the_o peaceable_a conversation_n of_o man_n be_v disturb_v 5._o mat._n 5._o you_o have_v hear_v say_v christ_n how_o it_o be_v say_v of_o old_a thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v and_o who_o so_o kill_v shall_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o judgement_n but_o i_o say_v to_o you_o that_o whosoever_o be_v angry_a with_o his_o brother_n shall_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o judgement_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v say_v to_o his_o brother_n raca_n shall_v be_v in_o danger_n of_o council_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v say_v thou_o fool_n shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o the_o hell_n of_o fire_n by_o which_o we_o be_v teach_v the_o right_a understanding_n of_o this_o commandment_n to_o be_v not_o only_o to_o prohibit_v kill_v but_o also_o to_o be_v inward_o angry_a or_o to_o make_v outward_a show_n or_o to_o give_v word_n of_o anger_n of_o all_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v by_o man_n none_o be_v so_o horrible_a to_o nature_n as_o the_o sin_n of_o blood_n 8._o be_v 8._o and_o to_o show_v how_o great_a a_o sin_n it_o be_v to_o kill_v christ_n will_v call_v the_o devil_n a_o mankiller_n from_o the_o beginning_n because_o the_o malice_n and_o evil_n of_o murder_n can_v not_o be_v better_o express_v then_o by_o put_v it_o and_o the_o devil_n together_o and_o make_v he_o the_o author_n of_o it_o cain_n be_v the_o first_o mankiller_n among_o man_n who_o intice_v his_o brother_n into_o the_o field_n roze_v up_o against_o he_o and_o kill_v he_o and_o present_o he_o be_v strike_v with_o such_o a_o horror_n at_o his_o crime_n that_o he_o despair_v of_o mercy_n and_o like_o a_o desperate_a reprobate_n go_v hang_v down_o his_o head_n think_v that_o every_o one_o that_o see_v he_o will_v kill_v he_o and_o cry_v 4._o gen._n 4._o loe_o now_o thou_o do_v cast_v i_o out_o this_o day_n from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o from_o thy_o face_n i_o shall_v be_v hide_v and_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o vagabonde_n and_o fugitive_n upon_o earth_n every_o one_o therefore_o that_o find_v i_o shall_v kill_v i_o and_o god_n to_o increase_v this_o horror_n of_o murder_n in_o we_o both_o in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o moses_n prohibit_v the_o eat_n of_o blood_n 17._o lou._n 17._o nay_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o to_o let_v blood_n to_o lie_v open_a upon_o the_o ground_n but_o to_o cover_v it_o and_o even_o dumb_a beast_n that_o can_v not_o sin_n be_v to_o loose_v their_o life_n if_o they_o kill_v any_o man_n all_o this_o be_v that_o man_n shall_v abhor_v the_o sin_n of_o murder_n and_o not_o be_v over_o bloody_a then_o when_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v maintain_v rather_o by_o force_n and_o by_o shed_v of_o their_o enemy_n blood_n then_o propagate_v by_o patience_n as_o now_o it_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n here_o enter_v those_o ignominious_a single_a combat_n of_o which_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n have_v these_o word_n that_o the_o detestable_a use_n of_o duel_n contrive_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o a_o bloody_a death_n of_o the_o body_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o soul_n may_v be_v quite_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o which_o young_a man_n who_o understande_v not_o what_o belong_v to_o wisdom_n and_o true_a glory_n meet_v in_o the_o field_n to_o wound_v tear_n and_o kill_v one_o another_o like_a mad_a dog_n and_o after_o their_o miserable_a death_n they_o become_v infamous_a to_o posterity_n purt_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n both_o of_o the_o militant_a and_o triumphant_a church_n of_o god_n and_o deprive_v of_o christian_n burial_n to_o lie_v like_o dog_n in_o the_o field_n that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apocal._n 22._o be_v full_o verify_v in_o they_o without_o be_v dog_n sorcerer_n and_o murderer_n there_o be_v a_o book_n here_o new_o publish_v call_v la_fw-fr destruction_n de_fw-fr dvel_n in_o which_o be_v show_v how_o contrary_a to_o reason_n and_o true_a christian_n honour_n d●●els_v be_v and_o in_o which_o be_v declare_v how_o that_o the_o marshal_n of_o france_n and_o diverse_a gentleman_n of_o quality_n have_v protest_v against_o they_o and_o promise_v that_o they_o will_v never_o regard_v any_o challenge_n nor_o fight_v a_o duel_n upon_o any_o occasion_n of_o injury_n whatsoever_o a_o heroical_a and_o christian_n like_o mind_n guide_v by_o virtue_n and_o discretion_n will_v make_v iniury_n honourable_a through_o patience_n which_o be_v the_o most_o proper_a virtue_n and_o honour_n of_o christian_n christ_n be_v bear_v patient_a live_v a_o patient_a life_n and_o at_o his_o death_n his_o patience_n be_v most_o eminent_o great_a more_o than_o we_o can_v understande_v he_o found_v his_o church_n first_o in_o his_o own_o suffering_n and_o then_o in_o those_o of_o his_o apostle_n after_o he_o and_o after_o they_o he_o enlarge_v it_o by_o the_o patience_n of_o many_o martyr_n and_o so_o he_o still_o continue_v and_o preserve_v it_o and_o therefore_o christian_n
commit_v the_o nine_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o desire_v thy_o neighbour_n wife_n 20._o exod._n 20._o in_o the_o book_n of_o exodus_fw-la where_o the_o substance_n only_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n be_v give_v in_o brief_a 5._o deut._n 5._o the_o two_o last_o commandment_n be_v put_v together_o thus_o thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v the_o house_n of_o thy_o neighbour_n neither_o shall_v thou_o desire_v his_o wife_n nor_o servant_n nor_o handmaid_n nor_o ox_n nor_o ass_n nor_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v he_o but_o in_o the_o book_n of_o deuteronomy_n where_o they_o be_v deliver_v more_o destinct_o and_o at_o large_a they_o be_v plane_n liar_n destinguish_v in_o these_o word_n 5._o mat_n 5._o thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n wife_n nor_o house_n nor_o field_n nor_o man_n servant_n nor_o woman_n servant_n nor_o ox_n nor_o ass_n nor_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v he_o where_o we_o see_v the_o concupiscence_n of_o the_o flesh_n first_o forbid_v and_o then_o the_o concupiscence_n of_o our_o neighbour_n good_n and_o so_o the_o catholic_a church_n common_o understand_v the_o desire_n of_o our_o neighbour_n wife_n to_o be_v forbid_v in_o the_o nine_o and_o the_o desire_n of_o his_o good_n to_o be_v prohibit_v in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n so_o that_o as_o the_o act_n of_o adultery_n and_o the_o act_n of_o theft_n be_v forbid_v in_o two_o destinct_a commandment_n to_o wir_fw-ge in_fw-ge the_o sixth_o and_o the_o seven_o as_o be_v two_o destinct_a kind_n of_o sin_n in_o act_n so_o the_o desire_n and_o consent_n unto_o adultery_n and_o the_o desire_n and_o consent_n unto_o thievery_n be_v forbid_v also_o by_o two_o distinct_a commandment_n as_o be_v two_o several_a kind_n of_o sin_n and_o have_v no_o more_o connexion_n in_o desire_n than_o adultery_n and_o thievery_n have_v in_o act_n this_o commandment_n therefore_o correspond_v to_o the_o sixth_o and_o forbid_v that_o in_o desire_n which_o it_o do_v in_o act_n and_o give_v to_o understand_v that_o not_o only_o evil_a deed_n and_o word_n but_o also_o evil_a desire_n be_v unlawful_a it_o be_v a_o error_n among_o the_o jew_n to_o think_v that_o the_o desire_n or_o consent_v unto_o sin_n be_v no_o sin_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o perform_v in_o work_n but_o this_o error_n be_v confute_v by_o these_o two_o last_o commandment_n and_o by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n it_o be_v say_v of_o old_a 5._o mat._n 5._o thou_o shall_v not_o committee_n adultery_n but_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o who_o soever_o shall_v see_v a_o woman_n to_o lust_n after_o she_o have_v already_o commit_v adultery_n with_o she_o in_o his_o heart_n this_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o divine_a and_o humane_a law_n that_o the_o divine_a law_n can_v bind_v our_o interior_a thought_n and_o humane_a law_n can_v bind_v only_o our_o exterior_a action_n because_o man_n not_o see_v the_o intention_n can_v not_o judge_v of_o it_o but_o god_n who_o see_v our_o thought_n can_v bind_v our_o intention_n because_o he_o can_v judge_v of_o they_o and_o can_v convince_v we_o and_o condemn_v we_o for_o they_o even_o by_o our_o own_o conscience_n man_n see_v those_o thing_n which_o appear_v 1.16_o reg._n 1.16_o but_o our_o lord_n behold_v the_o hart_n and_o so_o he_o can_v forbid_v as_o here_o he_o do_v the_o desire_n and_o inward_a consent_n unto_o adultery_n the_o sin_n of_o the_o mind_n be_v common_o call_v the_o sin_n of_o concupiscence_n and_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o declare_v what_o concupiscence_n be_v concupiscence_n be_v the_o natural_a inclination_n and_o appetite_n which_o we_o have_v of_o pleasant_a and_o delightsome_a thing_n and_o this_o concupiscence_n in_o itself_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o be_v indifferent_a unto_o good_a or_o evil_n and_o be_v actual_o good_a when_o it_o prosecute_v good_a and_o lawful_a deligts_fw-fr and_o be_v actual_o evil_a when_o it_o desire_v evil_a and_o unlawful_a delight_n 118._o ps_n 118._o it_o be_v a_o good_a concupiscence_n in_o king_n david_n when_o he_o sing_v concupivit_fw-la anima_fw-la mea_fw-la desiderare_fw-la iustificationes_fw-la tuas_fw-la omni_fw-la tempore_fw-la my_o soul_n have_v covet_v to_o desire_v thy_o iustification_n at_o all_o time_n it_o be_v a_o evil_a concupiscence_n in_o he_o and_o against_o this_o commandment_n when_o he_o covet_v another_o man_n wife_n it_o be_v a_o good_a concupiscence_n to_o desire_v good_a to_o our_o neighbour_n it_o be_v a_o evil_a concupiscence_n and_o against_o the_o next_o commandment_n to_o desire_v his_o good_n from_o he_o our_o concupiscence_n in_o itself_o and_o by_o nature_n be_v good_a but_o it_o be_v make_v evil_a by_o desire_v evil_a delight_n saint_n gregory_n have_v observe_v certain_a degree_n or_o as_o it_o be_v step_n in_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o mind_n first_o their_o be_v suggestion_n second_o delectation_n and_o three_o consent_n suggestion_n be_v when_o the_o sin_n be_v suggest_v and_o propose_v to_o the_o mind_n and_o this_o be_v no_o sin_n as_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o natural_a species_n and_o phancy_n only_o before_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o will_v delectation_n be_v the_o delight_n which_o follow_v of_o those_o suggestion_n which_o if_o it_o be_v only_o natural_a and_o unwilling_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n but_o if_o it_o be_v any_o way_n voluntary_a as_o cause_v of_o purpose_n or_o not_o sufficient_o resist_v then_o there_o be_v some_o sin_n in_o it_o because_o there_o be_v some_o kind_n of_o consent_n final_o sin_n be_v complete_v in_o the_o will_n and_o consent_n every_o one_o say_v s._n james_n be_v tempt_v of_o his_o own_o concupiscence_n abstract_v and_o allure_v afterward_o concupiscence_n when_o it_o have_v conceive_v bringethforth_o sin_n but_o sin_n when_o it_o be_v consummate_v generate_v death_n that_o be_v wear_v tempt_v by_o our_o own_o appetite_n and_o when_o we_o give_v way_n to_o our_o appetite_n tempt_v we_o to_o that_o which_o be_v unlawful_a we_o bringforth_o sin_n and_o by_o sin_n we_o incur_v eternal_a death_n by_o this_o commandment_n forbid_v the_o desire_n of_o adultery_n all_o unlawful_a desire_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v understand_v the_o remedy_n against_o they_o be_v as_o in_o the_o sixth_o commandment_n against_o adultery_n to_o use_v corporal_a austerity_n moderate_a pain_n read_v of_o good_a book_n and_o to_o fly_v the_o occasion_n of_o such_o sin_n and_o in_o time_n of_o temptation_n to_o make_v present_o a_o act_n of_o detestation_n of_o they_o and_o then_o to_o divert_v ourselves_o by_o some_o other_o employment_n and_o if_o for_o all_o this_o the_o temptation_n still_o continue_v to_o be_v content_a to_o have_v it_o as_o long_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n the_o ten_o commandment_n thou_o shall_v not_o covet_v thy_o neighbour_n good_n by_o this_o commandment_n we_o be_v forbid_v the_o desire_n of_o unlawful_a profit_n and_o although_o by_o house_n which_o be_v in_o the_o word_n of_o this_o commandment_n at_o large_a all_o kind_n of_o temporal_a riches_n be_v understand_v sometime_o in_o the_o scripture_n 1_o exo._n 1_o and_o all_o kind_n of_o worldly_a prosperity_n as_o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o god_n build_v the_o midwife_n of_o egypt_n house_n that_o be_v prosper_v they_o with_o worldly_a blessing_n yet_o he_o will_v here_o specify_v some_o particular_a good_n of_o our_o neighbour_n the_o more_o to_o avert_v we_o from_o covet_v any_o of_o they_o and_o because_o all_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o mind_n proceed_v from_o the_o desire_n either_o of_o unlawful_a pleasure_n or_o of_o unlawful_a profit_n therefore_o they_o may_v all_o be_v understand_v as_o forbid_v by_o one_o of_o these_o two_o commandment_n in_o the_o first_o of_o which_o the_o desire_n of_o unlawful_a pleasure_n in_o the_o second_o the_o desire_n of_o unlawful_a profit_n be_v prohibit_v and_o therefore_o there_o need_v no_o commandment_n correspond_v to_o the_o five_o to_o forbid_v the_o desire_n of_o kill_v because_o it_o be_v include_v in_o one_o of_o those_o two_o commandment_n coveteousnes_n of_o good_n be_v that_o which_o be_v forbid_v here_o 1.6_o tim._n 1.6_o which_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o root_n of_o all_o evil_n and_o in_o this_o it_o may_v be_v esteem_v the_o base_a of_o all_o sin_n that_o riches_n be_v the_o base_a of_o temporal_a felicity_n yet_o it_o be_v a_o marvel_n to_o see_v how_o wretched_o some_o be_v affect_v to_o this_o sin_n who_o have_v so_o set_v their_o heart_n on_o riches_n that_o they_o will_v live_v as_o it_o seem_v of_o the_o very_a thought_n of_o they_o and_o never_o use_v they_o they_o pass_v many_o a_o hungry_a day_n and_o want_v many_o thing_n which_o they_o may_v have_v because_o they_o will_v be_v covetous_a and_o have_v riches_n they_o know_v not_o what_o for_o but_o still_o the_o more_o they_o have_v the_o more_o they_o will_v have_v their_o avarice_n increase_v like_o the_o thirst_n of_o one_o in_o a_o dropsy_n
god_n because_o god_n show_v himself_o there_o in_o glory_n as_o a_o king_n reign_v in_o the_o mind_n and_o heart_n of_o his_o saint_n who_o be_v in_o perfect_a love_n and_o subjection_n to_o he_o and_o suppose_v here_o that_o which_o we_o pray_v for_o before_o to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n we_o may_v be_v understand_v to_o pray_v that_o our_o soul_n may_v be_v free_v out_o of_o the_o prison_n of_o our_o body_n 1._o phil._n 1._o and_o come_v soon_o to_o that_o happy_a state_n as_o the_o apostle_n desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n 6._o mat._n 6._o which_o we_o ought_v to_o ask_v for_o ourselves_o seek_v first_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n and_o the_o justice_n of_o he_o and_o all_o these_o thing_n shall_v be_v give_v you_o beside_o christ_n say_v this_o to_o his_o disciple_n after_o that_o he_o have_v deliner_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la to_o they_o in_o which_o he_o teach_v they_o first_o to_o ask_v the_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o then_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v good_a for_o themselves_o and_o among_o all_o those_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n 102._o tract_n 102._o this_o be_v say_v saint_n augustin_n that_o full_a and_o perfect_a joy_n which_o we_o ought_v to_o pray_v for_o and_o which_o oll_n our_o prayer_n ought_v to_o aim_v at_o as_o the_o only_a true_a joy_n here_o the_o roman_a catechism_n admonish_v pastor_n to_o excite_v their_o people_n to_o the_o love_n of_o that_o kingdom_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v indeed_o frequent_a enough_o for_o it_o but_o in_o order_n to_o this_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v sufficient_a that_o christ_n have_v say_v in_o few_o word_n ask_v and_o you_o shall_v receive_v that_o your_o joy_n may_v be_v full_a for_o what_o joy_n shall_v we_o desire_v but_o that_o which_o be_v full_a joy_n and_o fullness_n of_o joy_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v but_o in_o heaven_n every_o thing_n aspire_v to_o that_o in_o which_o its_o chief_a and_o full_a joy_n consist_v sensible_n thing_n to_o that_o which_o please_v the_o sense_n live_v thing_n to_o the_o conservation_n of_o life_n and_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v only_o be_v and_o no_o life_n delight_v in_o that_o which_o be_v according_a to_o their_o nature_n and_o seek_v to_o it_o because_o there_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o their_o joy_n and_o shall_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n which_o be_v reasonable_a above_o all_o these_o thing_n forsake_v that_o which_o be_v its_o chief_a and_o full_a joy_n all_o corporal_a thing_n tend_v with_o violence_n thither_o where_o their_o chief_a joy_n be_v and_o rest_v not_o content_v until_o they_o enjoy_v they_o the_o sun_n moon_n and_o planet_n rejoice_v in_o their_o course_n the_o star_n in_o their_o station_n and_o keep_v themselves_o in_o they_o because_o there_o be_v the_o fullnes_n of_o their_o joy_n the_o creature_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v some_o above_o the_o earth_n some_o within_o it_o and_o some_o part_n within_o and_o part_n without_o it_o as_o tree_n and_o herb_n and_o will_v not_o live_v otherwise_o because_o there_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o their_o delight_n the_o fish_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o fresh_a water_n seek_v always_o to_o be_v there_o and_o strive_v by_o violence_n to_o that_o place_n light_a thinig_n tend_v upward_o and_o heavy_a thing_n to_o the_o centre_n of_o the_o earth_n because_o there_o they_o have_v the_o fullness_n of_o their_o joy_n the_o fullness_n of_o our_o joy_n be_v no_o where_o but_o in_o heaven_n and_o why_o do_v not_o we_o then_o seek_v to_o it_o and_o abhor_v all_o that_o hinder_v we_o of_o it_o we_o live_v in_o this_o world_n as_o it_o be_v be_v out_o of_o our_o element_n in_o a_o place_n most_o loathsome_a to_o our_o soul_n a_o deadly_a prison_n condemn_v to_o die_v continual_o and_o in_o danger_n of_o eternal_a death_n 7._o rom._n 7._o what_o joy_n can_v we_o take_v in_o this_o condition_n unhappy_a that_o i_o be_o say_v the_o apostle_n who_o shall_v deliver_v i_o from_o the_o body_n of_o this_o death_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v diverse_o understand_v first_o it_o be_v general_a over_o all_o the_o world_n as_o he_o govern_v and_o provide_v for_o his_o subject_n which_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o all_o creature_n second_o it_o be_v more_o particular_o over_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o the_o people_n of_o a_o kingdom_n gather_v together_o to_o worship_v he_o as_o their_o true_a king_n three_o more_o particular_o yet_o his_o kingdom_n be_v with_o the_o just_a in_o who_o heart_n he_o reign_v by_o grace_n of_o who_o christ_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v with_o you_o 17._o luc._n 17._o last_o his_o kingdom_n be_v most_o especial_o over_o the_o bless_a to_o who_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n he_o shall_v say_v 25._o mat._n 25._o come_v the_o bless_a of_o my_o father_n possess_v you_o the_o kingdom_n prepare_v for_o you_o here_o we_o ask_v that_o we_o and_o all_o people_n may_v so_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o faith_n and_o good_a work_n that_o in_o the_o end_n we_o may_v obtain_v the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n for_o this_o kingdom_n be_v not_o otherwise_o obtain_v but_o by_o such_o faith_n as_o s._n 5._o gal._n 5._o paul_n require_v which_o work_v by_o charity_n as_o by_o those_o who_o have_v give_v meat_n drink_n and_o clothes_n for_o god_n sake_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v exclude_v that_o come_v with_o the_o profession_n only_o of_o catholics_n say_v 7._o mat._n 7._o lord_n lord_z open_z unto_o we_o but_o bring_v not_o with_o they_o the_o light_n of_o good_a work_n not_o every_o one_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n of_o which_o point_n saint_n augustine_n write_v a_o book_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la in_o which_o he_o show_v that_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n be_v misconstrue_v by_o some_o of_o those_o time_n as_o though_o he_o require_v not_o good_a work_n after_o baptism_n 14._o cap._n 14._o but_o that_o faith_n alone_o do_v justify_v and_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o other_o epistle_n of_o peter_n james_n and_o jude_n be_v write_v to_o avouch_v vehement_o that_o fait_z without_o good_a work_n profit_v nothing_o the_o three_o petition_n thy_o will_n be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n man_n have_v not_o a_o great_a enemy_n than_o his_o own_o will_n when_o it_o be_v not_o govern_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n all_o good_a thing_n which_o we_o have_v come_v by_o the_o goodness_n of_o the_o divine_a will_n and_o all_o evil_n that_o befall_v we_o come_v through_o the_o malice_n of_o our_o own_o will_n the_o ignorance_n of_o our_o understanding_n never_o hurt_v our_o soul_n but_o when_o it_o be_v voluntary_a and_o all_o our_o sin_n proceed_v from_o thence_o that_o either_o we_o will_v not_o do_v what_o we_o know_v be_v to_o be_v do_v or_o will_v not_o know_v what_o we_o be_v to_o do_v 5._o esa_n 5._o hence_o be_v that_o curse_n of_o the_o prophet_n woe_n untie_v you_o that_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil_n put_v darkness_n light_a and_o light_a darkness_n put_v bitter_a for_o sweet_a and_o sweet_a for_o bitter_a this_o curse_n come_v by_o the_o evil_a of_o our_o will_n because_o we_o will_v follow_v our_o own_o blindness_n and_o not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o rule_n and_o guide_v in_o all_o thing_n the_o malice_n of_o man_n begin_v present_o to_o be_v much_o upon_o earth_n and_o the_o cogitation_n of_o their_o hart_n be_v so_o bend_v upon_o upon_o evil_a that_o a_o deluge_n of_o water_n be_v send_v to_o destroy_v they_o this_o evil_n be_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o their_o will_n because_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o will_n of_o god_n which_o be_v sweet_a and_o lightsome_a but_o their_o own_o will_n which_o be_v dark_a and_o bitter_a in_o effect_n and_o so_o have_v all_o the_o evil_n of_o the_o world_n come_v therefore_o we_o be_v topray_n and_o to_o labour_v with_o ourselves_o for_o conformity_n with_o the_o will_n of_o god_n beside_o we_o not_o know_v what_o be_v best_a for_o we_o ask_v that_o some_o time_n which_o be_v hurtful_a as_o sick_a folk_n in_o a_o fever_n desire_n that_o which_o hurt_v they_o and_o as_o child_n who_o will_v take_v poison_n for_o treacle_n if_o they_o have_v there_o own_o will_n and_o therefore_o sick_a folk_n and_o child_n have_v keeper_n who_o will_n they_o must_v follow_v and_o be_v direct_v by_o we_o be_v as_o child_n in_o our_o will_n and_o understanding_n both_o deficient_a by_o sin_n god_n be_v our_o
bring_v before_o the_o council_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o accuse_v by_o false_a witness_n cease_v not_o still_o to_o do_v good_a for_o evil_n but_o make_v a_o discourse_n to_o they_o to_o show_v that_o christ_n be_v expect_v by_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n to_o come_v to_o redeem_v they_o and_o therefore_o exhort_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o when_o they_o be_v even_o cut_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o gnash_v with_o their_o tooth_n against_o he_o and_o be_v ston_a he_o to_o death_n he_o fall_v down_o upon_o his_o knee_n and_o pray_v for_o they_o cry_v with_o a_o loud_a voice_n 7._o act._n 7._o lord_n lay_v not_o this_o sin_n unto_o they_o it_o be_v a_o fine_a example_n that_o which_o s._n gregory_n relate_v of_o libertinus_fw-la a_o monk_n 1._o gregor_n dial_n c._n 1._o who_o have_v receive_v a_o great_a blow_n on_o the_o face_n by_o his_o superior_a sudden_o strike_v with_o a_o board_n at_o he_o he_o go_v away_o quiet_o into_o his_o cell_n without_o show_v the_o least_o sign_n of_o impatience_n and_o come_v the_o next_o day_n to_o the_o abbot_n that_o have_v strike_v he_o to_o ask_v leave_n to_o go_v abroad_o the_o abbot_n suspect_v that_o he_o will_v forsake_v the_o monastery_n but_o perceive_v his_o occasion_n to_o be_v real_a and_o just_a and_o observe_v his_o bruise_a face_n which_o with_o a_o marvelous_a tranquillity_n of_o mind_n he_o endure_v he_o fall_v down_o upon_o his_o knee_n and_o ask_v pardon_v and_o the_o other_o again_o fall_v prostrate_a to_o his_o superior_a confess_v his_o authority_n over_o he_o we_o have_v in_o good_a author_n the_o example_n even_o of_o wild_a beast_n who_o have_v render_v themselves_o serviceable_a to_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n and_o follow_v they_o for_o their_o mildness_n how_o generous_a and_o christian-like_a be_v this_o spirit_n of_o patience_n in_o bear_v and_o pardon_v of_o iniury_n when_o the_o mind_n settle_v itself_o for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o inward_o content_v with_o that_o satisfaction_n one_o pitty_v to_o see_v his_o enemy_n in_o passion_n even_o as_o one_o that_o be_v in_o a_o calm_a and_o safe_a harbour_n will_v pity_v to_o see_v another_o on_o the_o rage_a sea_n in_o shippwrack_n and_o either_o by_o some_o discreet_a word_n labour_v to_o pacify_v he_o or_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o pacify_v himself_o 86._o ps_n 86._o the_o mild_a shall_v inherit_v the_o land_n and_o shall_v be_v delight_v in_o the_o multitude_n of_o peace_n but_o to_o see_v some_o of_o a_o implaceable_a mind_n bear_v grudge_n in_o their_o heart_n and_o never_o make_v and_o en_fw-fr of_o their_o malice_n what_o spirit_n shall_v we_o call_v this_o unworthy_a of_o the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o it_o be_v a_o dissemble_a spirit_n with_o which_o many_o be_v deceive_v who_o think_v themselves_o free_a from_o it_o present_o upon_o every_o occasion_n they_o be_v think_v how_o to_o be_v revenge_v of_o their_o neighbour_n and_o when_o they_o can_v neither_o spare_v he_o with_o a_o good_a word_n nor_o a_o good_a look_n they_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o they_o be_v in_o charity_n with_o he_o and_o mean_v he_o no_o hurt_n a_o perversed_a and_o childish_a say_n if_o other_o shall_v behave_v themselves_o in_o like_a manner_n to_o they_o they_o will_v easy_o see_v the_o shame_n of_o it_o but_o in_o themselves_o they_o see_v it_o not_o nor_o consider_v not_o the_o hurt_n which_o they_o occasion_n by_o their_o ill_a example_n and_o behaviour_n which_o if_o all_o shall_v imitate_v there_o will_v be_v no_o friendship_n nor_o true_a charity_n in_o the_o world_n if_o neither_o the_o love_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o godnes_n of_o nature_n will_v move_v these_o to_o amend_v let_v they_o fear_v some_o exemplar_n punishment_n by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 28._o eccle._n 28._o who_o say_v he_o that_o will_v be_v revenge_v shall_v find_v revenge_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o have_v spend_v all_o that_o chapter_n in_o speak_v against_o that_o sin_n he_o draw_v to_o a_o end_n in_o these_o word_n bless_a be_v he_o that_o be_v cover_v from_o a_o wicked_a tongue_n that_o have_v not_o pass_v into_o the_o anger_n thereof_o for_o the_o yoke_n of_o it_o be_v a_o yoke_n of_o iron_n and_o the_o band_n of_o it_o be_v a_o band_n of_o brass_n the_o death_n of_o it_o be_v a_o most_o wicked_a death_n and_o hell_n be_v more_o profitable_a than_o it_o to_o ask_v with_o more_o earnestness_n the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o receive_v our_o petition_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o stir_v ourselves_o up_o to_o a_o great_a compunction_n of_o hart_n and_o vehement_a detestation_n of_o sin_n as_o the_o great_a of_o all_o evil_n that_o can_v befall_v us._n first_o it_o be_v the_o cause_n and_o origin_n of_o all_o evil_n as_o it_o depisu_v we_o of_o god_n a_o infinite_a good_a second_o by_o sin_n we_o be_v make_v slave_n to_o the_o devil_n the_o hard_a master_n and_o most_o cruel_a tyrant_n of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o spouse_n and_o temple_n of_o god_n his_o horrid_a and_o ugly_a mate_n accurse_v of_o god_n and_o give_v to_o the_o sorrow_n of_o a_o eternal_a destruction_n know_v you_o not_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n 1.3_o cor._n 1.3_o say_v the_o apostle_n but_o if_o any_o violate_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n god_n will_v destroy_v he_o three_o by_o sin_n we_o be_v at_o continual_a war_n and_o unquietnes_n with_o in_o ourselves_o for_o as_o long_o as_o we_o have_v any_o sense_n of_o reason_n although_o we_o be_v out_o of_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n we_o must_v be_v sensible_a of_o sin_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o reason_n and_o therefore_o abigail_n wise_o dissuade_v david_n from_o take_v revenge_n of_o nabal_n say_v this_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o occasion_n of_o sob_v to_o thou_o 1.25_o reg._n 1.25_o and_o a_o scruple_n of_o hart_n and_o david_n complain_v of_o the_o sin_n of_o his_o former_a life_n say_v that_o as_o arrow_n they_o stack_n fast_o in_o he_o 37._o ps_n 37._o and_o that_o his_o bone_n have_v no_o peace_n at_o the_o face_n of_o his_o sin_n there_o be_v no_o pain_n nor_o torment_n in_o the_o world_n to_o compare_v with_o a_o guilty_a conscience_n the_o vengeance_n of_o god_n purse_v we_o as_o our_o shadow_n and_o affright_v we_o with_o fear_n of_o punishment_n when_o we_o have_v sin_v and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o scripture_n compare_v sinner_n to_o sick_a lame_a sore_a and_o disease_a person_n tribulation_n and_o anguish_n upon_o every_o soul_n that_o work_v evil_a 2._o rom._n 2._o but_o glory_n and_o honour_n and_o peace_n to_o every_o one_o that_o work_v good_a say_v the_o apostle_n this_o be_v sin_n and_o these_o be_v breisly_a and_o in_o general_a the_o evil_n of_o it_o which_o if_o we_o will_v consider_v as_o we_o ought_v we_o shall_v desire_v above_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n and_o with_o as_o much_o earnestness_n cry_v unto_o god_n to_o be_v free_v from_o any_o mortal_a sin_n as_o we_o will_v to_o be_v free_v from_o some_o grecuous_a torment_n know_v thou_o and_o see_v say_v hieremy_n that_o be_v a_o evil_a and_o a_o bitter_a thing_n for_o thou_o to_o have_v leave_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n 2._o hier._n 2._o and_o those_o that_o will_v not_o see_v this_o nor_o understande_v the_o evil_a of_o sin_n to_o seek_v the_o forgiune_n of_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v a_o hart_n of_o stone_n and_o of_o adamant_n and_o such_o be_v the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n of_o god_n unto_o sinner_n that_o he_o never_o deny_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n to_o those_o that_o true_o seek_v for_o it_o king_n david_n wash_v his_o couch_n with_o tear_n s._n peter_n go_v out_o and_o weep_v bitter_o after_o his_o sin_n s._n mary_n magdalene_n shed_v many_o tear_n upon_o the_o foot_n of_o christ_n let_v we_o imitate_v they_o the_o sixth_o petition_n and_o lead_v we_o not_o into_o temptation_n have_v in_o the_o former_a petition_n pray_v for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n we_o pray_v now_o not_o to_o be_v lead_v into_o temptation_n for_o when_o our_o sin_n be_v forgive_v we_o than_o we_o be_v in_o more_o danger_n of_o temptation_n because_o we_o be_v then_o the_o friend_n of_o god_n and_o the_o profess_a enemy_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o therefore_o he_o strive_v more_o against_o us._n tobias_n a_o holy_a man_n be_v tempt_v even_o to_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n by_o the_o vehemency_n of_o pain_n which_o in_o his_o eye_n he_o suffer_v and_o the_o angel_n when_o he_o cure_v he_o tell_v he_o 12._o tob._n 12._o because_o thou_o be_v acceptable_a to_o god_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o temptation_n shall_v prove_v thou_o job_n a_o just_a and_o perfect_a man_n be_v strike_v in_o his_o good_n in_o his_o child_n and_o
word_n it_o may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v infinite_a in_o grace_n the_o fullnes_n of_o his_o grace_n be_v also_o eminent_a above_o all_o in_o that_o grace_n be_v give_v to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o head_n source_n and_o fountain_n which_o be_v to_o serve_v we_o all_o with_o grace_n of_o his_o fullnes_n say_v s._n john_n all_o we_o have_v receive_v no_o grace_n be_v ever_o give_v to_o any_o but_o as_o flow_v from_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o passion_n next_o unto_o christ_n the_o b._n virgin_n have_v the_o great_a fullnes_n of_o grace_n for_o grace_n be_v give_v unto_o creature_n with_o proportion_n and_o in_o order_n to_o the_o office_n and_o dignity_n to_o which_o god_n design_v they_o and_o so_o the_o b._n virgin_n have_v a_o great_a proportion_n of_o grace_n then_o any_o angel_n or_o saint_n have_v for_o that_o she_o be_v design_v to_o a_o high_a office_n and_o dignity_n than_o any_o angel_n or_o saint_n be_v her_o grace_n be_v to_o be_v such_o as_o may_v render_v her_o worthy_a to_o be_v the_o woman_n who_o god_n will_v choose_v above_o all_o woman_n to_o take_v flesh_n of_o to_o nourish_v he_o in_o her_o womb_n to_o bring_v he_o forth_o to_o the_o world_n to_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o his_o infancy_n and_o education_n and_o to_o have_v he_o subject_a unto_o she_o as_o the_o evangelist_n declare_v he_o to_o have_v be_v for_o all_o which_o a_o great_a measure_n and_o proportion_n of_o grace_n be_v necessary_a that_o as_o her_o charge_n and_o dignity_n be_v eminent_a above_o all_o so_o may_v her_o grace_n be_v suitable_a unto_o it_o in_o the_o three_o place_n be_v the_o fullnes_n of_o grace_n which_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n have_v to_o the_o fulfil_n of_o those_o work_n to_o which_o god_n have_v ordain_v they_o and_o so_o s._n stevan_fw-mi have_v fullnes_n of_o grace_n in_o order_n to_o the_o well_o perform_v of_o a_o deacon_n office_n to_o confound_v the_o jew_n and_o to_o be_v the_o first_o martyr_n and_o encourager_n of_o other_o to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n for_o christ_n by_o his_o example_n and_o so_o to_o enter_v into_o glory_n so_o that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v most_o eminent_a in_o grace_n goodly_a of_o beauty_n above_o the_o son_n of_o man_n 44._o ps_n 44._o in_o that_o his_o humane_a nature_n be_v unite_v to_o the_o divine_a word_n and_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n to_o us._n our_o bless_a lady_n be_v next_o to_o he_o in_o that_o she_o have_v the_o high_a office_n and_o great_a charge_n in_o relation_n to_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o angel_n and_o saint_n be_v in_o a_o low_a degree_n than_o she_o yet_o they_o also_o have_v fullnes_n of_o grace_n in_o their_o measure_n and_o in_o proportion_n to_o their_o office_n they_o all_o have_v fullnes_n of_o grace_n but_o in_o several_a kind_n and_o in_o a_o different_a nature_n the_o angel_n and_o saint_n in_o the_o low_a place_n our_o b._n lady_n above_o they_o and_o christ_n in_o a_o high_a nature_n transcend_v both_o they_o and_o she_o and_o our_o b._n lady_n have_v not_o only_o a_o high_a nature_n of_o grace_n then_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n have_v but_o she_o have_v also_o a_o great_a capacity_n in_o her_o soul_n which_o god_n create_v as_o a_o more_o ample_a and_o capable_a vessel_n contain_v a_o great_a measure_n of_o grace_n than_o they_o can_v contain_v although_o full_o also_o in_o their_o measure_n and_o capacity_n and_o therefore_o she_o be_v compare_v to_o that_o huge_a vessel_n call_v the_o sea_n 3.7_o reg._n 3.7_o which_o solomon_n cause_v to_o be_v make_v for_o the_o temple_n which_o contain_v ten_o thousand_o gallows_n according_a to_o author_n and_o unto_o the_o main_a ocean_n 2._o chrysol_n ser_fw-mi 146._o albert._n sup_v missus_fw-la bonau_n in_o spec_fw-la virg_n cap._n 2._o but_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o our_o bless_a saviour_n be_v not_o only_a creature_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n but_o also_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n according_a to_o his_o divine_a nature_n he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v number_v in_o the_o number_n of_o creature_n and_o therefore_o the_o saint_n and_o holy_a father_n common_o say_v that_o our_o b._n lady_n in_o grace_n and_o glory_n surpass_v all_o creature_n not_o number_v christ_n and_o so_o we_o say_v proper_o that_o she_o be_v above_o all_o pure_a creature_n that_o be_v to_o say_v only_a creature_n but_o that_o we_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o exaggerate_v towards_o her_o praise_n more_o than_o due_a and_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n without_o good_a ground_n you_o shall_v see_v as_o much_o and_o more_o than_o we_o have_v say_v to_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o solidity_n of_o many_o bundred_n of_o year_n stand_v ever_o from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n when_o the_o very_a enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o now_o be_v confess_v the_o christian_a faith_n to_o have_v be_v most_o pure_a from_o error_n and_o the_o church_n most_o flourish_v the_o holy_a and_o learned_a man_n of_o those_o time_n have_v setforth_o her_o praise_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o in_o the_o very_a same_o term_n which_o we_o now_o use_v and_o have_v pray_v unto_o she_o call_v her_o mistress_n lady_n queen_n mother_n of_o god_n and_o the_o like_a title_n to_o honour_v she_o and_o to_o increase_v the_o denotion_n of_o people_n unto_o she_o first_o in_o the_o first_o age_n saint_n james_n the_o apostle_n in_o in_o his_o lyturgy_n which_o he_o make_v for_o the_o church_n service_n will_v not_o omit_v to_o make_v a_o commemoration_n of_o she_o but_o begin_v the_o word_n of_o the_o hail_n mary_n as_o the_o angel_n do_v he_o repeat_v they_o and_o call_v she_o most_o holy_a undefiled_a bless_v above_o all_o our_o queen_n lady_n mother_n of_o god_n saint_n ignatius_n live_v in_o the_o same_o age_n be_v disciple_n to_o saint_n john_n evangelist_n and_o die_v a_o glorious_a martyr_n in_o the_o next_o age_n after_o hedeclare_v how_o great_o she_o be_v honour_v even_o then_o when_o she_o live_v that_o multitude_n of_o people_n come_v to_o visit_v she_o when_o they_o be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n great_a be_v the_o concourse_n of_o people_n say_v he_o that_o go_v to_o see_v the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n 1._o ign._n ep_v 1._o and_o to_o hear_v she_o and_o again_o he_o call_v she_o the_o mistress_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n saint_n denis_n first_o philosopher_n of_o athens_n and_o then_o the_o disciple_n of_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr divinis_fw-la nominibus_fw-la cap_n 33._o relate_v how_o that_o himself_o after_o his_o conversion_n go_v to_o see_v she_o for_o that_o she_o be_v leave_v to_o be_v the_o comfort_n and_o joy_n of_o christian_n after_o the_o ascension_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothe_n he_o describe_v the_o manner_n of_o her_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o life_n how_o that_o all_o the_o apostle_n except_o s_n thomas_n be_v bring_v together_o miraculous_o from_o the_o several_a part_n of_o the_o world_n to_o be_v present_a at_o her_o death_n with_o devout_a canticle_n they_o celebrate_v her_o funeral_n for_o three_o day_n the_o angel_n join_v their_o heavenly_a melody_n with_o they_o and_o that_o saint_n thomas_n come_v the_o three_o day_n and_o desire_v to_o see_v her_o sacred_a corpse_n her_o tomb_n be_v open_v that_o he_o may_v see_v she_o at_o least_o after_o her_o death_n but_o he_o see_v she_o not_o for_o that_o she_o be_v not_o there_o to_o be_v see_v a_o great_a sweetness_n issue_v out_o of_o the_o sepulchre_n and_o the_o linen_n in_o which_o she_o be_v wrap_v be_v leave_v in_o it_o but_o her_o sacred_a body_n be_v not_o there_o thus_o saint_n denis_n and_o he_o conclude_v this_o narration_n say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v think_v but_o that_o as_o god_n will_v preserve_v her_o virginal_a body_n free_a from_o corruption_n in_o the_o conception_n of_o her_o son_n so_o he_o will_v preserve_v it_o from_o corruption_n after_o her_o death_n and_o assume_v it_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o heaven_n before_o the_o general_a glorification_n of_o other_o body_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n saint_n john_n damascen_n relate_v this_o history_n out_o of_o s._n denis_n deip_v de_fw-fr dorm_n deip_v who_o he_o cit_v as_o a_o eye_n witness_n of_o it_o and_o say_v that_o her_o tomb_n and_o linen_n that_o be_v leave_v in_o it_o be_v transfer_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n martion_n with_o great_a solemnity_n from_o jerusalem_n to_o constantinople_n saint_n augustine_n do_v not_o only_o approve_v of_o the_o corporal_a assumption_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n into_o heaven_n but_o also_o proove_v it_o as_o most_o congruous_a to_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n 8._o aug._n the_o assump_n
she_o and_o and_o to_o make_v they_o virgin_n and_o therefore_o those_o word_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v well_o apply_v unto_o she_o by_o the_o church_n i_o be_o exalt_v as_o a_o cedar_n in_o libanus_n 24._o eccli_n 24._o i_o as_o a_o vine_n have_v fructify_v sweetness_n of_o odour_n christ_n will_v be_v botne_n of_o a_o virgin_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o virginity_n and_o to_o condemn_v jovinian_a and_o other_o licentious_a haeretik_n that_o be_v to_o condemn_v it_o and_o therefore_o he_o will_v observe_v it_o himself_o and_o have_v his_o mother_n to_o observe_v it_o by_o vow_n neither_o be_v her_o marriage_n opposite_a to_o this_o vow_n for_o as_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o she_o that_o without_o detriment_n of_o her_o virginity_n she_o shall_v conceive_v so_o without_o doubt_n her_o integrity_n in_o marriage_n which_o be_v less_o be_v also_o by_o divine_a revelation_n make_v know_v to_o she_o christ_n will_v also_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o marry_a woman_n for_o the_o honour_n of_o marriage_n and_o to_o refute_v the_o encratites_n and_o such_o like_a fantastical_a haeretik_n that_o be_v to_o condemn_v it_o and_o also_o to_o conserve_v her_o honour_n that_o she_o may_v not_o be_v suspect_v tohave_v conceive_v unlawful_o and_o as_o such_o to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o law_n s._n ignat._n martyr_n and_o s._n john_n damascen_n add_v also_o a_o three_o reason_n to_o wit_n to_o conceal_v the_o manner_n of_o her_o conception_n from_o the_o devil_n that_o he_o may_v not_o strive_v to_o hinder_v in_o any_o thing_n the_o more_o perfect_a work_n of_o that_o mystery_n which_o be_v fullfil_v in_o she_o and_o therefore_o they_o seem_v to_o think_v that_o god_n will_v bind_v and_o limit_v his_o understanding_n so_o that_o see_v she_o to_o be_v marry_v he_o shall_v not_o attend_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o her_o conceive_v but_o that_o she_o conceive_v as_o a_o marry_a woman_n in_o brief_a the_o sum_n of_o her_o praise_n out_o of_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n allege_v be_v that_o she_o excel_v in_o dignity_n sanctity_n and_o glory_v all_o man_n and_o angel_n even_o the_o high_a seraphim_n that_o she_o be_v the_o miracle_n of_o the_o world_n that_o she_o be_v our_o lady_n our_o mistress_n our_o queen_n the_o mother_n of_o god_n the_o treasure_n of_o sanctity_n that_o she_o be_v undefiled_a and_o untouched_a with_o sin_n that_o her_o life_n be_v the_o rule_n and_o discipline_n of_o we_o that_o she_o be_v a_o perpetual_a virgin_n and_o the_o crown_n of_o virginity_n that_o she_o be_v the_o mistress_n and_o sceptre_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o that_o she_o be_v our_o advocate_n these_o be_v the_o praise_n which_o you_o have_v see_v give_v ancient_o by_o the_o holy_a father_n to_o she_o and_o which_o all_o catholic_n will_v ever_o give_v she_o well_o may_v the_o angel_n salute_v her_o full_a of_o grace_n who_o god_n have_v fill_v with_o such_o grace_n with_o what_o reverence_n may_v we_o think_v he_o comport_v himself_o to_o she_o he_o name_v she_o not_o at_o first_o hy_z her_o proper_a name_n as_o we_o do_v when_o we_o say_v haile_o marry_o full_a of_o grace_n with_o more_o hope_n and_o confidence_n to_o require_v her_o intercession_n which_o the_o angel_n require_v not_o but_o afterward_o see_v she_o trouble_v at_o his_o speech_n to_o comfort_v she_o he_o present_o call_v she_o by_o her_o name_n say_v fear_v not_o mary_n it_o be_v then_o nececessary_a to_o condescende_v to_o a_o more_o familiar_a manner_n of_o speak_v then_o at_o first_o he_o will_v use_v of_o due_a submission_n unto_o she_o out_o of_o all_o which_o we_o may_v gather_v what_o obligation_n we_o have_v to_o be_v devote_a to_o our_o bless_a lady_n and_o how_o please_v that_o devotion_n be_v to_o god_n our_o lord_n be_v with_o thou_o such_o word_n be_v often_o read_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o have_v be_v use_v by_o way_n of_o salvation_n so_o do_v the_o angel_n salute_v gedeon_n 6._o jud._n 6._o say_v dominus_fw-la tecum_fw-la our_o lord_n be_v with_o thou_o so_o say_v booz_n to_o his_o reaper_n of_o corn_n 2._o ruth_n 2._o our_o lord_n be_v with_o you_o but_o in_o these_o place_n it_o be_v rather_o understand_v optative_o wish_v and_o pray_v that_o god_n may_v be_v with_o they_o then_o as_o the_o angel_n speak_v to_o our_o bless_a lady_n indicative_o declare_v that_o god_n be_v then_o actual_o with_o she_o say_v our_o lord_n be_v with_o thou_o and_o in_o the_o greek_a the_o article_n be_v here_o add_v to_o show_v that_o god_n be_v after_o a_o singular_a manner_n with_o she_o to_o wit_n dispose_v and_o prepare_v she_o by_o a_o more_o eminent_a degree_n of_o grace_n present_o to_o be_v incarnate_v in_o she_o bless_a art_n thou_o among_o woman_n these_o word_n be_v first_o speak_v by_o the_o angel_n and_o afterward_o by_o s._n elizabeth_n who_o when_o the_o mother_n of_o god_n come_v to_o visit_v she_o be_v inspire_v to_o repeat_v they_o over_o again_o and_o to_o cry_v they_o out_o with_o a_o loud_a voice_n as_o it_o be_v to_o proclaim_v she_o bless_v in_o that_o house_n of_o prophet_n where_o christ_n our_o b._n lady_n s._n john_n baptist_n saint_n elizabeth_n and_o zachary_n then_o be_v altogether_o rejoice_v in_o christ_n and_o in_o her_o blessedness_n all_o of_o they_o either_o prophet_n or_o more_o than_o prophet_n she_o be_v call_v bless_v by_o contrary_n to_o eve_n who_o by_o her_o sin_n provoke_v our_o curse_n and_o our_o bless_a lady_n by_o her_o sanctity_n be_v the_o mean_n of_o our_o bliss_n and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v threaten_v to_o the_o serpent_n 3._o gen._n 3._o when_o he_o seduce_v eve_n accurse_a art_n thou_o among_o all_o catle_n so_o a_o angel_n be_v send_v to_o the_o b._n virgin_n to_o say_v bless_a art_n thou_o among_o woman_n and_o saint_n elizabeth_n be_v inspire_v torepeate_v it_o over_o again_o she_o be_v indeed_o that_o bless_a mother_n who_o by_o her_o son_n bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n and_o take_v away_o the_o curse_n of_o our_o first_o mother_n from_o us._n apply_v here_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 33._o eccl._n 33._o against_o evil_n be_v good_a and_o against_o death_n be_v life_n so_o also_o against_o a_o just_a man_n a_o sinner_n and_o so_o look_v upon_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o high_a two_o against_o two_o and_o one_o against_o one_o against_o the_o evil_a of_o eve_n be_v the_o good_a of_o mary_n against_o death_n by_o eve_n life_n by_o mary_n against_o eve_n a_o sinner_n we_o have_v mary_n a_o just_a woman_n without_o sin_n christ_n and_o mary_n against_o the_o serpent_n and_o eve_n christ_n against_o the_o serpent_n and_o mary_n against_o eve_n and_o so_o two_o against_o two_o and_o one_o against_o one_o eve_n bring_v sin_n by_o yield_v to_o the_o serpent_n the_o bless_a virgin_n bring_v christ_n to_o sight_n against_o he_o and_o to_o free_a us._n ever_o blessedmay_v he_o be_v and_o bless_v that_o woman_n by_o who_o we_o be_v all_o bless_a let_v now_o no_o haeretike_n dare_v to_o blaspheme_v against_o she_o who_o the_o angel_n first_o salute_v full_a of_o grace_n and_o then_o style_v bless_v among_o woman_n and_o who_o s._n elizabeth_n also_o declare_v and_o proclaim_v bless_v who_o dare_v calumniate_v she_o who_o god_n have_v so_o honour_v we_o detest_v the_o rot_a breast_n and_o stink_a mouth_n of_o those_o who_o shall_v dare_v to_o detract_v from_o any_o of_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n and_o much_o more_o from_o the_o bless_a among_o woman_n the_o angel_n have_v deliver_v his_o embassage_n to_o she_o expect_v her_o answer_n the_o which_o she_o give_v in_o these_o humble_a word_n behold_v the_o handmaid_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v it_o do_v to_o i_o according_a to_o thy_o word_n where_o she_o consent_v to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n give_v her_o virginal_a body_n for_o his_o son_n to_o be_v incarnate_v in_o present_o at_o these_o word_n a_o marriage_n be_v contract_v betwixt_o the_o divine_a and_o humane_a nature_n and_o they_o be_v instant_o unite_v together_o in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o b._n virgin_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n let_v every_o christian_n knee_n bend_v at_o these_o word_n and_o do_v homage_n in_o his_o hart_n to_o the_o word_n incarnate_v and_o let_v he_o honour_v the_o virgin_n choose_v of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o mean_n of_o fulfil_n that_o high_a mystery_n for_o the_o great_a honour_n of_o which_o we_o will_v declare_v sometihing_n of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o it_o gabriel_n angel_n gabriel_n first_o for_o the_o angel_n name_n that_o bring_v the_o message_n he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o evangelist_n gabriel_n not_o that_o the_o angel_n have_v any_o proper_a name_n but_o that_o they_o be_v assume_v or_o attribute_v to_o they_o in_o respect_n of_o some_o mystery_n to_o which_o those_o angel_n
not_o only_o see_v he_o but_o take_v he_o joyful_o into_o his_o arm_n 2._o luc._n 2._o and_o then_o bless_a god_n sing_v like_o the_o swan_n before_o his_o death_n now_o thou_o do_v dismiss_v thy_o servant_n o_o lord_n according_a to_o thy_o word_n in_o peace_n because_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n the_o five_o ten_o be_v say_v in_o honour_n of_o christ_n dispute_v in_o the_o temple_n his_o parent_n have_v be_v at_o jerusalem_n to_o solemnise_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o pasch●_n return_v home_o again_o and_o think_v he_o to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o company_n that_o return_v with_o they_o they_o come_v a_o day_n journey_n and_o seek_v he_o among_o their_o kinsfolk_n but_o not_o find_v he_o they_o return_v to_o jerusalem_n to_o seek_v he_o there_o and_o after_o three_o day_n they_o find_v he_o sit_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o doctor_n astonish_v all_o with_o his_o wisdom_n and_o answer_n these_o be_v the_o five_o joyful_a mystery_n the_o five_o sorrowful_a be_v these_o first_o the_o pray_v of_o christ_n in_o the_o garden_n when_o the_o very_a apprehension_n of_o his_o future_a passion_n be_v so_o vehement_a that_o he_o burst_v forth_o into_o a_o sweat_n of_o blood_n to_o think_v of_o it_o the_o second_o be_v his_o whip_n at_o the_o pillar_n the_o three_o be_v his_o crown_n with_o thorn_n the_o four_o be_v the_o carry_v of_o his_o cross_n when_o after_o that_o they_o have_v weaken_v he_o with_o many_o torment_n they_o lead_v he_o or_o rather_o trail_v he_o about_o the_o street_n of_o jerusalem_n with_o his_o heavy_a cross_n on_o his_o shoulder_n until_o he_o be_v so_o spout_v that_o they_o who_o of_o pity_n will_v not_o ease_v he_o of_o it_o in_o the_o end_n of_o cruelty_n take_v it_o from_o he_o to_o prolong_v his_o life_n until_o they_o have_v crucify_v he_o the_o five_o it_o his_o crucify_a and_o death_n all_o which_o passage_n be_v in_o themselves_o most_o dolorous_a and_o next_o unto_o christ_n be_v most_o grievous_a to_o our_o bless_a lady_n who_o if_o she_o be_v not_o corporal_o present_a at_o they_o so_o as_o to_o see_v every_o one_o of_o they_o yet_o without_o doubt_n she_o be_v spiritual_o present_a at_o they_o all_o and_o see_v by_o revelation_n all_o which_o he_o suffer_v according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o simeon_n that_o a_o sword_n shall_v pierce_v her_o soul_n 3._o luc._n 3._o to_o wit_n the_o sword_n of_o sorrow_n which_o pass_v through_o her_o son_n in_o honour_n of_o these_o five_o sorrowful_a mystery_n we_o say_v other_o sine_fw-la tenn_n the_o five_o glorious_a be_v first_o the_o resurrection_n when_o christ_n rise_v triumph_v over_o death_n on_o easter_n sunday_n the_o angel_n appear_v to_o comfort_v the_o devour_v woman_n and_o to_o the_o terror_n of_o the_o soldier_n that_o watch_v at_o the_o monument_n the_o second_o be_v his_o ascension_n at_o which_o the_o apostle_n be_v ravish_v to_o behold_v his_o glory_n the_o three_o be_v the_o come_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n on_o whit_n sunday_n with_o terrible_a and_o astonish_a glory_n to_o strengthen_v the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o gospel_n the_o four_o be_v the_o glorious_a assumption_n of_o our_o b●_n lady_n who_o soul_n depart_v from_o her_o body_n in_o death_n be_v present_o glorify_v and_o the_o three_o day_n according_a to_o ancient_a author_n return_v to_o her_o body_n to_o glorify_v it_o they_o be_v both_o together_o assumpt_v into_o heaven_n for_o if_o it_o be_v probable_o think_v of_o those_o body_n which_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a in_o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n that_o they_o ascend_v with_o he_o glorious_a into_o heaven_n we_o can_v not_o think_v with_o reason_n that_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o which_o our_o lord_n take_v flesh_n shall_v corrupt_v in_o the_o earth_n and_o remain_v so_o until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n unglorify_v the_o sift_n be_v her_o glorious_a coronation_n in_o the_o celestial_a court_n and_o although_o these_o two_o last_o mystery_n of_o the_o assumption_n and_o of_o the_o coronation_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n may_v seem_v to_o some_o to_o be_v the_o same_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o her_o assumption_n intend_v only_o her_o state_n of_o glory_n in_o general_a to_o wit_n that_o she_o be_v assume_v body_n and_o soul_n into_o heaven_n and_o her_o coronation_n import_v her_o particular_a state_n of_o glory_n as_o she_o be_v crown_v the_o queen_n of_o heaven_n above_o all_o angel_n and_o saint_n these_o be_v in_o brief_a the_o fifteen_o mystery_n of_o the_o rosary_n the_o sieve_n joyful_a be_v the_o annunciation_n the_o visitation_n the_o nativity_n the_o purification_n of_o our_o lady_n and_o the_o presentation_n of_o christ_n the_o find_v of_o he_o dispute_v in_o the_o temple_n the_o sieve_n sorrowful_a be_v the_o pray_v in_o the_o garden_n the_o whip_n at_o the_o pillar_n the_o crown_n with_o thorn_n the_o carry_v of_o the_o cross_n the_o crucify_a and_o death_n of_o christ_n the_o five_o glorious_a be_v his_o resurrection_n his_o ascension_n the_o come_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o assumption_n and_o coronation_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n when_o we_o have_v not_o time_n or_o leisure_n to_o say_v all_o the_o fifteen_o tenn_n in_o honour_n of_o the_o fifteen_o mystery_n we_o may_v say_v sieve_n in_o honour_n of_o any_o five_o of_o they_o either_o of_o the_o five_o joyful_a or_o of_o the_o five_o dolotous_a or_o of_o the_o five_o glorious_a as_o we_o will_v allwais_o conclude_v with_o the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o profession_n of_o our_o faith_n it_o be_v true_a all_o do_v not_o understande_v that_o these_o mystery_n be_v thus_o contain_v in_o the_o rosary_n nor_o always_o remember_v they_o when_o they_o say_v their_o bead_n but_o the_o church_n of_o god_n understand_v and_o remember_v they_o in_o the_o approve_v and_o allow_v of_o that_o devotion_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o every_o one_o understande_v all_o the_o mystery_n that_o be_v contain_v in_o his_o prayer_n but_o he_o shall_v please_v god_n if_o he_o conform_v his_o intention_n to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o church_n in_o they_o 3._o luc._n 3._o although_o he_o understande_v they_o not_o who_o can_v understande_v say_v saint_n augustine_n all_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o we_o please_v god_n in_o observe_v they_o because_o we_o conform_v our_o intention_n to_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o ordain_v they_o it_o be_v indeed_o very_o good_a that_o all_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o rosary_n and_o therefore_o we_o expound_v they_o and_o it_o be_v very_o good_a that_o all_o remember_v they_o when_o they_o say_v their_o bead_n and_o therefore_o before_o every_o ten_o i_o use_v to_o mention_v in_o particular_a the_o mystery_n of_o that_o ten_o as_o for_o example_n before_o the_o first_o pat●r_fw-la noster_fw-la isay_n bless_a mother_n of_o god_n by_o thy_o annunciation_n pray_v for_o i_o before_o the_o second_o i_o say_v bless_a mother_n of_o god_n by_o thy_o visitation_n pray_v for_o i_o and_o so_o forth_o of_o the_o rest_n whether_o i_o say_v the_o whole_a rosary_n or_o only_o five_o tenn_n of_o it_o by_o which_o mean_v one_o shall_v attend_v better_o to_o the_o devotion_n which_o he_o be_v perform_v and_o perform_v more_o express_o that_o which_o the_o church_n intend_v by_o it_o which_o be_v to_o set_v holy_a object_n before_o our_o eye_n and_o to_o propose_v to_o our_o consideration_n the_o mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n the_o intention_n therefore_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n by_o the_o rosary_n be_v to_o keep_v the_o ignorant_a especial_o those_o that_o can_v not_o read_v employ_v in_o this_o devout_a exercise_n and_o to_o propose_v unto_o all_o the_o remembrance_n and_o consideration_n of_o holy_a thing_n from_o whence_o proceed_v that_o coldness_n looseness_n and_o aversion_n from_o good_a work_n and_o holy_a exercise_n which_o be_v in_o many_o but_o from_o the_o want_n of_o consideration_n of_o pious_a thing_n 12._o hier._n 12._o with_o desolation_n be_v all_o the_o land_n make_v desolate_a say_v hieremy_n because_o there_o be_v none_o that_o consider_v in_o the_o hart_n good_a object_n propose_v be_v the_o seed_n of_o good_a thought_n and_o bring_v forth_o good_a purpose_n and_o good_a work_n the_o feed_n must_v first_o be_v sow_v in_o the_o sense_n that_o by_o the_o understanding_n and_o will_v the_o fruit_n of_o good_a work_n may_v be_v produce_v and_o therefore_o as_o holy_a jacob_n place_v rodd_n of_o diverse_a colour_n before_o his_o ewe_n that_o they_o may_v conceive_v and_o bringforth_o lamb_n of_o diverse_a colour_n like_o they_o so_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n set_v before_o their_o people_n holy_a object_n that_o by_o behold_v they_o they_o may_v conceive_v good_a
our_o lord_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n the_o mass_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v the_o action_n of_o sacrifice_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n which_o be_v sacrifice_v or_o offer_v at_o mass_n the_o worship_n of_o sacrifice_n have_v be_v esteem_v at_o all_o time_n and_o by_o all_o religion_n so_o necessary_a to_o be_v give_v to_o god_n that_o there_o never_o be_v any_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n according_a to_o turseline_n before_o the_o turk_n so_o barbarous_a but_o as_o they_o allwais_o worship_v some_o god_n so_o they_o offer_v some_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n to_o he_o in_o so_o much_o that_o plutarch_n can_v say_v that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o find_v citty_n without_o temple_n color_n plut._n a●_n vers_fw-la color_n and_o coin_n of_o money_n without_o inscription_n then_o temple_n without_o altar_n to_o wit_n to_o sacrifice_n upon_o for_o the_o same_o natural_a reason_n that_o teach_v all_o people_n to_o defend_v themselves_o and_o to_o honour_v their_o superior_n teach_v they_o also_o to_o worship_n god_n with_o some_o high_a and_o sovereign_a worship_n above_o all_o proper_a only_o to_o he_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o good_a expression_n of_o this_o author_n to_o declare_v by_o the_o foresay_a similitude_n the_o nature_n and_o necessity_n of_o sacrifice_n for_o as_o citty_n be_v defend_v by_o wall_n and_o principality_n destinguish_v and_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o impression_n of_o their_o coin_n so_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v maintain_v and_o his_o supreme_a principality_n destinguish_v and_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o worship_n of_o sacrifice_n as_o due_a and_o proper_a only_o to_o he_o dei_fw-la l._n 10._o de_fw-fr ciu._n dei_fw-la quis_fw-la enim_fw-la sacrificandum_fw-la censuit_fw-la say_v s._n augustine_n nisi_fw-la ei_fw-la quem_fw-la deum_fw-la aut_fw-la scivit_fw-la aut_fw-la putavit_fw-la aut_fw-la finixit_fw-la for_o who_o ever_o deem_v that_o sacrifice_n be_v to_o be_v offer_v to_o any_o but_o to_o he_o who_o he_o either_o know_v or_o think_v or_o feign_v to_o be_v god_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o the_o devil_n have_v labour_v so_o much_o to_o have_v sacrifice_n offer_v by_o infidel_n unto_o he_o because_o it_o be_v the_o high_a and_o proper_o divine_a worship_n and_o therefore_o shall_v antichrist_n strive_v so_o much_o to_o take_v away_o the_o daily_a sacrifice_n of_o mass_n as_o daniel_n figurative_o prophesy_v in_o wicked_a antiochus_n because_o it_o be_v the_o high_a external_a act_n of_o religion_n we_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n the_o act_n of_o our_o mind_n as_o spiritual_a sacrifice_n and_o we_o offer_v up_o also_o some_o corporal_a thing_n to_o he_o to_o acknowledge_v he_o the_o author_n both_o of_o our_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o spiritual_a and_o corporal_a thing_n in_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n sacrifice_n be_v offer_v to_o god_n and_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n which_o be_v more_o perfect_a than_o that_o sacrifice_n also_o be_v offer_v to_o he_o and_o shall_v he_o want_v his_o supreme_a worship_n in_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o do_v but_o praesigure_n as_o to_o be_v perfect_v by_o it_o no_o the_o shall_v have_v a_o much_o more_o perfect_a sacrifice_n and_o that_o be_v the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n offer_v every_o day_n to_o he_o this_o be_v our_o sacrifice_n the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v offer_v on_o the_o cros_n the_o most_o noble_a and_o precious_a of_o all_o corporal_a thing_n and_o therefore_o most_o worthy_a to_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o that_o law_n and_o religion_n which_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o his_o own_o person_n be_v to_o institute_v among_o us._n all_o true_a sacrifice_n before_o christ_n be_v but_o type_n and_o emblem_n of_o honour_n to_o setforth_o the_o dignity_n of_o our_o sacrifice_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n be_v good_a and_o holy_a sacrifice_n yet_o as_o those_o law_n do_v but_o signify_v the_o more_o perfect_a law_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v to_o come_v so_o their_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n of_o those_o law_n be_v but_o figure_n of_o we_o their_o sacrifice_n of_o beef_n calf_n ram_n lamb_n turtle_n and_o the_o like_a be_v kill_v and_o their_o blood_n be_v shed_v upon_o the_o altar_n to_o signify_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n who_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v shed_v upon_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o cross_n there_o be_v in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n three_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n the_o holocaust_n the_o placable_a host_n and_o the_o peaceable_a host_n the_o holocaust_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v all_o burn_v for_o it_o be_v not_o offer_v for_o any_o particular_a end_n or_o intention_n but_o only_o to_o give_v supreme_a honour_n to_o god_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v all_o total_o consume_v in_o honour_n of_o he_o the_o placable_a host_n be_v to_o appease_v the_o divine_a wrath_n when_o by_o some_o sin_n they_o have_v offend_v he_o and_o it_o be_v divide_v part_n of_o it_o be_v consume_v to_o god_n and_o part_v give_v to_o the_o priest_n to_o signify_v that_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n proceed_v chief_o from_o god_n as_o the_o principal_a cause_n and_o secondary_o from_o priest_n as_o the_o instrument_n and_o mean_n by_o which_o his_o poweris_n apply_v to_o us._n the_o pacifique_a or_o peaceable_a host_n be_v offer_v for_o the_o obtain_n of_o some_o benefit_n which_o they_o desire_v or_o in_o thanksgiving_a for_o some_o which_o they_o have_v obtain_v and_o it_o be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n the_o one_o of_o which_o be_v consume_v to_o god_n another_o be_v give_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o another_o remain_v to_o the_o party_n that_o offer_v it_o to_o signify_v that_o all_o benefit_n proceed_v from_o god_n by_o the_o help_n of_o priest_n and_o by_o our_o own_o endeavour_n concur_v with_o they_o all_o these_o sacrifice_n be_v fullfil_v in_o we_o to_o wit_n in_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n he_o be_v our_o holocaust_n quite_o consume_v in_o his_o death_n upon_o the_o cross_n he_o be_v our_o placable_a host_n that_o appease_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o we_o he_o our_o peaceable_a host_n by_o who_o we_o have_v all_o benefit_n their_o bloody_a sacrifice_n more_o express_o signify_v his_o body_n as_o it_o be_v be_v offer_v on_o the_o cross_n and_o their_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o first_o fruit_n corn_n flower_n bread_n and_o the_o like_a represent_v more_o particular_o the_o same_o body_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v after_o a_o unbloody_a manner_n upon_o the_o holy_a altar_n at_o mass_n but_o the_o plane_a figure_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o mass_n be_v a_o lamb_n with_o bread_n and_o wine_n offer_v every_o day_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n to_o signify_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n offer_v under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o the_o daily_a and_o continual_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o christ_n then_o to_o come_v our_o sacrifice_n then_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o those_o shadow_n and_o the_o glorious_a mystery_n which_o they_o be_v to_o signify_v this_o s._n andrew_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n profess_v as_o the_o priest_n of_o achaia_n in_o his_o martyrdom_n rehearse_v when_o be_v urge_v by_o aegeas_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o idol_n he_o have_v this_o answer_n ready_a for_o he_o i_o offer_v every_o day_n upon_o the_o altar_n a_o immaculate_a lamb_n who_o flesh_n when_o all_o the_o people_n have_v eat_v the_o lamb_n that_o be_v sacrifyze_v remain_v whole_a and_o alive_a thus_o do_v he_o glory_n in_o our_o immaculate_a lamb_n which_o every_o day_n as_o a_o priest_n he_o offer_v and_o which_o the_o people_n than_o use_v every_o day_n to_o receive_v and_o in_o these_o word_n he_o plane_o intimate_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o moses_n and_o especial_o that_o of_o the_o daily_a lamb_n be_v but_o sigure_n to_o dicipher_v shadow_n to_o denote_v and_o emblem_n of_o honour_n to_o setforth_o the_o dignity_n of_o we_o that_o be_v then_o to_o come_v a_o sacrifice_n like_o they_o but_o infinite_o more_o perfect_a and_o those_o sacrifice_n be_v shadow_n of_o we_o then_o to_o come_v they_o be_v to_o vanish_v away_o and_o to_o be_v offer_v no_o more_o when_o it_o once_o come_v because_o than_o they_o lose_v their_o nature_n which_o be_v to_o signify_v we_o as_o future_n but_o the_o holy_a sacrifice_n of_o mass_n represent_v no_o other_o future_a sacrifice_n and_o be_v the_o most_o perfect_a of_o all_o sacrifice_n can_v never_o be_v make_v void_a by_o any_o nor_o shall_v ever_o have_v a_o end_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o we_o will_v show_v that_o the_o sacred_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n as_o it_o be_v offer_v at_o mass_n be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n the_o
body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v true_o offer_v as_o a_o sacrifice_n on_o the_o cross_n so_o in_o the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v true_o offer_v as_o a_o sacrifice_n at_o mass_n protestant_n say_v that_o his_o true_a body_n be_v neither_o true_o offer_v as_o a_o sacrifice_n at_o mass_n nor_o be_v the_o eucharist_n any_o sacrifice_n at_o all_o nor_o yet_o be_v he_o so_o much_o as_o present_v in_o it_o what_o commeration_n do_v they_o make_v according_a to_o this_o doctrine_n of_o his_o death_n on_o the_o cros_n where_o he_o be_v both_o true_o present_a and_o a_o true_a sacrifice_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o they_o labour_v to_o pull_v down_o the_o mass_n as_o the_o chief_a and_o high_a worship_n of_o god_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v regard_v not_o to_o take_v away_o all_o commemoration_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o to_o leave_v the_o world_n for_o ever_o after_o without_o any_o sacrifice_n at_o all_o we_o have_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 13._o act._n 13._o where_o they_o be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v minister_a to_o our_o lord_n which_o plane_o denote_v that_o they_o be_v offer_v of_o sacrifice_n for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v preach_v or_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n only_o than_o they_o have_v minister_v to_o the_o people_n but_o to_o minister_v to_o god_n can_v have_v no_o other_o proper_a signification_n but_o to_o offer_v something_o to_o god_n in_o the_o greek_a text_n it_o be_v express_o they_o be_v offering_n of_o sacrifice_n and_o erasmus_n himself_o translate_v it_o so_o expound_v the_o word_n lyturgy_n which_o the_o greek_n take_v from_o thence_o to_o signify_v the_o church_n service_n missa_fw-la the_o mass_n so_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v sacrifice_n and_o mass_n the_o church_n have_v declare_v this_o verity_n in_o several_a general_n counsel_n the_o first_o council_n of_o nyce_n can._n 13._o and_o more_o plane_o in_o another_o canon_n which_o doctor_n kellison_n mention_v out_o of_o surius_n and_o out_o of_o the_o reverend_a lord_n cuthbert_n tunstall_n the_o last_o cathol_a ke_a bishop_n of_o durham_n of_o who_o consanguinity_n i_o very_o much_o glory_n as_o a_o glorious_a confessor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n the_o same_o after_o many_o general_a counsel_n be_v last_o declare_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o which_o it_o be_v define_v that_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n be_v offer_v to_o god_n at_o mass_n 2._o sess_n 22._o c._n 1._o &_o 2._o holy_a and_o ancient_a father_n have_v speak_v plane_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v call_v it_o by_o the_o word_n missa_fw-la the_o mass_n 3._o can._n 3._o so_o the_o apostle_n in_o their_o canon_n require_v that_o those_o who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o church_n service_n when_o they_o have_v hear_v the_o scripture_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o gospel_n they_o remain_v until_o mass_n be_v do_v 3._o clem._n ep_v 3._o s._n clement_n who_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n admonish_v the_o clergy_n that_o they_o do_v nothing_o without_o the_o licence_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o in_o particular_a that_o no_o priest_n say_v mass_n with_o out_o it_o 12._o eccl._n hire_n c._n 3._o amb._n in_o luc._n 1._o aug._n l._n 10._o de_fw-la ciu_o dei_fw-la c._n 19_o &_o 20._o ser._n 13._o de_fw-fr verb._n apost_n l._n 3._o the_o bap_n c._n 19_o bed_n l._n 4._o c._n 12._o s._n denis_n the_o disciple_n of_o s._n paul_n call_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n the_o quicken_a holy_a sacrifice_n the_o unbloody_a host_n and_o victim_n s._n ambrose_n say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o angel_n do_v assist_v when_o christ_n be_v immolate_a s._n augustine_n elegant_o describe_v the_o distinction_n of_o our_o inward_a and_o outward_a sacrifice_n declare_v how_o that_o christ_n according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v the_o sacrifice_n and_o according_a to_o his_o divinity_n receive_v it_o and_o call_v it_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o mediator_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o our_o price_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o style_v it_o the_o only_a inconsumptible_a victim_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o religion_n s._n bede_n who_o live_v after_o they_o although_o about_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o relate_v a_o notable_a histoty_n to_o setforth_o the_o power_n of_o the_o mass_n the_o sum_n of_o which_o be_v that_o a_o gentleman_n who_o serve_v the_o king_n of_o northumberland_n in_o his_o war_n be_v sore_o wound_v in_o battle_v be_v take_v by_o the_o enemy_n and_o recover_n of_o his_o wound_n be_v sell_v unto_o a_o merchant_n of_o london_n his_o brother_n who_o be_v a_o priest_n think_v he_o to_o have_v be_v kill_v say_v every_o day_n mass_n for_o he_o and_o to_o show_v the_o power_n and_o essicacy_n of_o the_o mass_n in_o lose_v of_o the_o soul_n from_o punishment_n in_o the_o next_o world_n it_o please_v god_n that_o allwais_o at_o that_o time_n of_o day_n in_o which_o his_o brother_n say_v mass_n for_o he_o the_o fetter_n with_o which_o he_o be_v bind_v of_o their_o own_o accord_n be_v loose_v from_o he_o in_o so_o much_o that_o be_v patron_n observe_v it_o and_o acknowledge_v some_o mystery_n in_o it_o give_v leave_v to_o his_o bondsman_n to_o go_v among_o his_o friend_n to_o procure_v his_o ransom_n it_o be_v a_o story_n worthy_a to_o be_v read_v at_o large_a in_o s._n bede_n who_o end_v the_o narration_n of_o it_o in_o these_o word_n this_o because_o i_o know_v it_o to_o be_v true_a i_o will_v insert_v it_o into_o my_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o if_o it_o be_v true_a as_o s._n bede_n say_v he_o know_v it_o to_o be_v it_o must_v manifest_o conclude_v for_o the_o dignity_n power_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o mass_n according_a as_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sacrificè_fw-la as_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v final_o the_o mass_n be_v so_o ancient_a and_o so_o plane_o testify_v by_o the_o primitive_a father_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o a_o protestant_a author_n confess_v that_o no_o beginning_n there_o of_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n can_v be_v show_v 9_o ascham_n apol_n pro_fw-la coena_fw-la do._n calu._n in_o heb._n 9_o which_o when_o caluin_n see_v to_o be_v true_a he_o can_v not_o contain_v himself_o but_o break_v forth_o into_o these_o irreverent_a word_n that_o the_o distinction_n of_o a_o bloody_a and_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n be_v a_o scholastical_a and_o frivolous_a innention_n add_v another_o far_o worse_a term_n which_o i_o will_v not_o repeat_v and_o conclude_v nil_fw-la moror_fw-la quod_fw-la veteres_fw-la scriptores_fw-la sic_fw-la loquantur_fw-la i_o care_v not_o for_o ancient_a writer_n say_v so_o no_o caluin_n care_v not_o for_o ancient_a writer_n saying_n but_o good_a catholic_n care_v for_o they_o it_o shall_v allwais_o be_v a_o comfort_n to_o we_o to_o have_v our_o doctrine_n confirm_v by_o the_o sanctity_n learning_n and_o antiquity_n of_o such_o writer_n as_o i_o have_v produce_v in_o testimony_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o by_o such_o miracle_n as_o s._n bede_n have_v relate_v which_o i_o need_v not_o to_o have_v mention_v over_o again_o but_o for_o caluin_n rash_a word_n we_o show_v by_o such_o writer_n that_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholics_n and_o we_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a because_o the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n do_v so_o believe_v and_o this_o whole_a church_n be_v contradict_v by_o caluin_n when_o he_o begin_v his_o doctrine_n in_o opposition_n and_o disobedience_n to_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o for_o this_o i_o will_v add_v further_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o have_v a_o altar_n 13._o heb._n 13._o where_o of_o they_o have_v not_o power_n to_o cate_z that_o serve_v the_o tabernacle_n he_o speak_v there_o to_o some_o who_o be_v convert_v from_o judaisme_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v still_o incline_v to_o the_o jewish_a sacrifice_n and_o to_o dissuade_v they_o from_o this_o he_o compare_v together_o their_o altar_n and_o we_o and_o prefer_v we_o by_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o we_o have_v a_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n for_o what_o be_v altar_n for_o but_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n on_o and_o the_o apostle_n compare_v these_o two_o altar_n together_o must_v suppose_v and_o understande_v their_o sacrifice_n by_o they_o for_o the_o altar_n be_v not_o eat_v but_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v offer_v on_o they_o and_o therefore_o as_o the_o jewish_a altar_n have_v a_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v eat_v so_o have_v the_o altar_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o else_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n betwixt_o the_o two_o altar_n nor_o connexion_n in_o the_o apostle_n speech_n to_o the_o former_a authority_n i_o add_v this_o reason_n the_o
he_o in_o the_o syndon_n and_o lay_v he_o in_o a_o moument_n that_o be_v hew_v out_o of_o a_o rock_n and_o roll_v a_o stone_n to_o the_o door_n of_o the_o monument_n the_o pall_v or_o linen_n signify_v the_o syndon_n the_o chalice_n the_o monument_n in_o which_o he_o be_v lay_v the_o patene_n the_o stone_n that_o be_v roll_v to_o the_o door_n and_o therefore_o there_o must_v be_v at_o least_o two_o pall_v or_o linen_n clothes_n upon_o the_o altar_n to_o signify_v the_o wrap_v of_o christ_n and_o for_o the_o same_o signification_n the_o corporal_n or_o upper_a pall_n use_v ancient_o to_o be_v join_v to_o the_o undermore_o and_o come_v from_o under_o the_o chalice_n to_o turn_v over_o it_o again_o candle_n cruifix_n c_o wax_z candle_n but_o now_o for_o more_o convenience_n it_o be_v divide_v into_o the_o corporal_a under_o the_o chalice_n and_o the_o pall_n above_o it_o a_o crucifix_n or_o cros_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o altar_n in_o remembrance_n of_o christ_n passion_n wax_v candle_n be_v light_v to_o signify_v he_o who_o be_v the_o true_a light_n illuminate_v all_o man_n they_o be_v of_o wax_n in_o token_n of_o his_o purity_n who_o be_v a_o virgin_n of_o a_o virgin_n mother_n all_o thing_n be_v prepare_v then_o mass_n begin_v the_o mass_n may_v be_v divide_v into_o three_o part_n the_o first_o be_v from_o the_o begin_n to_o the_o offertory_n mass_n the_o division_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o preparation_n and_o introduction_n to_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o mass_n the_o second_o and_o principal_a part_n be_v from_o the_o offertory_n to_o the_o postcommunion_n the_o three_o be_v from_o the_o post_n communion_n to_o the_o end_n which_o be_v a_o thanksgiving_n for_o the_o mystery_n celebrate_v the_o whole_a mass_n be_v in_o relation_n to_o the_o chief_a passage_n of_o the_o life_n and_o death_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o beginning_n to_o gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la the_o time_n before_o his_o come_n be_v represent_v and_o the_o great_a desire_n which_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n and_o prophet_n have_v of_o he_o before_o he_o come_v from_o gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la to_o the_o gospel_n his_o come_n be_v celebrate_v and_o his_o life_n until_o his_o preach_n from_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o offertory_n his_o preach_n be_v denote_v from_o the_o offertory_n to_o the_o postcommunion_n the_o chief_a passage_n which_o have_v relation_n to_o his_o persecution_n passion_n and_o death_n be_v signify_v from_o the_o postcommunion_n to_o the_o end_n his_o resurrection_n be_v commemorate_a and_o the_o time_n until_o his_o ascension_n all_o be_v conclude_v with_o thanks_n give_v to_o god_n first_o the_o priest_n come_v down_o before_o the_o altar_n and_o do_v reverence_n to_o it_o mass_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o to_o a_o holy_a thing_n and_o if_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n be_v there_o kneel_v down_o to_o it_o he_o begin_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n say_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o profess_v his_o faith_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n and_o in_o the_o incarnation_n and_o to_o implore_v grace_n to_o the_o worthy_a celebrate_n of_o those_o holy_a mystery_n which_o he_o be_v then_o go_v about_o to_o wit_n to_o offer_v sacrifice_n to_o all_o mighty_a god_n to_o offer_v the_o same_o sacrifice_n which_o christ_n himself_o offer_v to_o handle_v his_o very_a natural_a body_n to_o represent_v himself_o offer_v then_o as_o at_o his_o death_n for_o and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o the_o church_n the_o whole_a bless_a trinity_n with_o quire_n of_o angel_n be_v present_a as_o spectator_n of_o what_o he_o do_v have_v arm_v himself_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n and_o with_o these_o consideration_n he_o say_v the_o antiphone_fw-la and_o psalm_n introibo_fw-la ad_fw-la altar_n dei_fw-la etc._n etc._n 42._o introibo_fw-la psal_n 42._o which_o antiphone_fw-la as_o all_o other_o be_v as_o it_o be_v devout_a undersong_n say_v before_o and_o after_o the_o psalm_n in_o relation_n to_o it_o consiteor_fw-la consiteor_fw-la then_o he_o say_v the_o consiteor_fw-la acknowledge_v humble_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a celestial_a court_n and_o of_o the_o people_n there_o present_a his_o sin_n by_o thought_n word_n and_o work_v desire_v the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n the_o angel_n and_o saint_n and_o people_n that_o be_v present_a to_o pray_v for_o he_o then_o the_o clerk_n who_o represent_v the_o people_n pray_v for_o he_o say_v misereatur_fw-la tui_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o have_v by_o devout_a versicle_n and_o answer_v mutual_o commend_v each_o other_o to_o god_n in_o their_o prayer_n he_o go_v up_o pray_v in_o private_a for_o the_o remission_n of_o his_o sin_n and_o that_o he_o may_v worthy_o ascend_v unto_o the_o altar_n the_o altar_n as_o i_o have_v say_v signifi_v the_o cros_n on_o which_o christ_n be_v offer_v altar_n the_o kiss_n of_o the_o altar_n it_o signifi_v also_o the_o church_n compact_v of_o many_o live_a stone_n and_o in_o both_o respect_v the_o priest_n often_o kiss_v it_o to_o show_v how_o willing_o christ_n accept_v of_o his_o cros_n for_o we_o and_o how_o much_o he_o love_v the_o catholic_a church_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o altar_n where_o the_o book_n be_v first_o lay_v signifi_v the_o jew_n to_o who_o he_o go_v first_o because_o they_o have_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n first_o preach_v to_o they_o the_o left_a side_n of_o the_o altar_n signifi_v the_o gentile_n who_o at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o darkness_n of_o infidelity_n and_o he_o kiss_v the_o altar_n in_o the_o midst_n to_o signify_v the_o reconcile_n of_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n by_o who_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n be_v lay_v open_a unto_o all_o then_o he_o go_v to_o the_o book_n and_o read_v the_o introit_n introit_n the_o introit_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o king_n david_n psalm_n or_o of_o some_o of_o the_o prophet_n have_v relation_n to_o the_o solemnity_n of_o that_o mass_n and_o signifi_v the_o great_a joy_n which_o the_o patriarch_n and_o prophet_n have_v in_o the_o foreseeing_a of_o christ_n to_o excite_v we_o to_o more_o reverence_n attention_n and_o devotion_n to_o his_o life_n and_o death_n then_o represent_v then_o he_o go_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o altar_n eleison●_n the_o kyrie_fw-la eleison●_n and_o say_v the_o kyrie_fw-la eleyson_n which_o be_v first_o say_v thrice_o in_o honour_n of_o the_o father_n then_o christ_n eleyson_fw-la thrice_o in_o honour_n of_o the_o son_n than_o kyrie_fw-la eleyson_fw-la thrice_o in_o honour_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o often_o repeat_v of_o they_o signifi_v the_o manifold_a sigh_n and_o earnest_a desire_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o of_o all_o the_o just_a soul_n that_o where_o in_o limbus_n who_o seionrning_n be_v prolong_v that_o they_o can_v not_o have_v the_o perfect_a and_o complete_a joy_n of_o heaven_n until_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v to_o open_a heaven_n gate_n for_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o pray_v earnest_o and_o continual_o for_o it_o 39_o psal_n 39_o as_o the_o holy_a king_n signify_v say_v expect_v i_o expect_v our_o lord_n and_o he_o have_v attend_v to_o i_o etc._n etc._n thou_o be_v my_o help_n 112._o psal_n 112._o and_o my_o protection_n my_o god_n be_v not_o slack_a and_o in_o another_o place_n 16._o esa_n 16._o unto_o thou_o i_o have_v lift_v up_o my_o eye_n from_o whence_o help_n shall_v come_v to_o i_o and_o the_o prophet_n esay_n send_v forth_o o_o lord_n the_o lamb_n the_o dominatour_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o priest_n have_v prepare_v himself_o to_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n life_n and_o death_n deo_fw-la gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la deo_fw-la and_o represent_v the_o state_n of_o the_o world_n before_o his_o come_n and_o the_o desire_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o just_a for_o it_o now_o declare_v the_o grant_n of_o their_o desire_n celebrate_v his_o come_n with_o a_o loud_a and_o joyful_a voice_n pronounce_v gloria_fw-la in_o excelsis_fw-la deo_fw-la etc._n etc._n glory_n in_o the_o high_a 2._o luc._n 2._o which_o be_v the_o word_n with_o which_o the_o angel_n praise_v god_n at_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n sing_v in_o his_o birth_n glory_n in_o the_o high_a to_o god_n and_o in_o earth_n peace_n to_o man_n of_o good_a will_n a_o angel_n be_v then_o send_v to_o say_v to_o the_o shepherd_n behold_v i_o evangelise_v to_o you_o great_a joy_n that_o shall_v be_v to_o all_o people_n because_o this_o day_n be_v bear_v to_o you_o a_o saviour_n which_o be_v christ_n our_o lord_n in_o the_o city_n of_o david_n a_o star_n be_v send_v to_o illuminate_v the_o three_o king_n unto_o bethleem_n simon_n be_v send_v to_o welcome_a christ_n into_o the_o
2._o phil._n 2._o how_o much_o more_o shall_v they_o bow_v unto_o himself_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o chalice_n be_v consecrate_v and_o elevate_v that_o all_o may_v adore_v our_o saviour_n in_o it_o and_o after_o the_o consecration_n that_o the_o priest_n have_v touch_v the_o sacred_a host_n he_o open_v not_o his_o singar_n to_o touch_v any_o other_o thing_n until_o after_o the_o consummation_n that_o he_o purifi_v they_o the_o son_n of_o caath_v who_o be_v also_o clergy_n man_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n and_o be_v to_o carry_v the_o ark_n altar_n and_o vessel_n theirof_o at_o the_o remove_n of_o the_o camp_n be_v not_o to_o touch_v they_o lest_o they_o die_v 4._o nu._n 4._o with_o what_o reverence_n then_o ought_v we_o to_o touch_v our_o sacred_a host_n insinit_o more_o perfect_a than_o any_o thing_n which_o they_o have_v the_o reverence_n which_o god_n command_v they_o be_v but_o in_o figure_n to_o command_v more_o to_o us._n the_o consecration_n be_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o mass_n and_o contain_v indeed_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o whole_a mass_n for_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v then_o represent_v the_o host_n be_v offer_v and_o consummate_v also_o representative_o and_o so_o it_o have_v even_o then_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o perfect_a representative_a or_o commemorative_a sacrifice_n and_o be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n as_o i_o have_v show_v after_o consecration_n he_o make_v a_o commemoration_n for_o the_o dead_a mortuis_fw-la memento_n frr_v the_o dead_a lib._n de_fw-fr cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la which_o be_v a_o institution_n of_o the_o church_n high_o commend_v by_o s._n augustine_n as_o most_o profitable_a for_o the_o soul_n of_o many_o poor_a people_n who_o not_o have_v mean_n to_o get_v themselves_o pray_v for_o nor_o friend_n to_o procure_v prayer_n to_o be_v say_v in_o particular_a for_o they_o be_v not_o only_a partaker_n of_o all_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o of_o charity_n pray_v for_o in_o every_o mass_n the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la be_v say_v to_o profess_v that_o all_o our_o petition_n be_v ask_v hope_v for_o noster_fw-la pater_fw-la noster_fw-la and_o obtain_v through_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n who_o command_v his_o apostle_n 2._o mat._n 2._o ask_v and_o it_o shall_v be_v give_v you_o it_o be_v not_o meet_v say_v s._n gregory_n that_o at_o mass_n when_o so_o many_o devout_a prayer_n be_v say_v which_o holy_a man_n have_v make_v the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la shall_v be_v omit_v which_o christ_n himself_o make_v as_o the_o best_a of_o all_o prayer_n the_o sacred_a host_n be_v divide_v to_o signify_v the_o separation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o our_o saviour_n at_o his_o death_n a_o particle_n of_o it_o be_v put_v into_o the_o chalice_n to_o signify_v their_o meeting_n and_o reunion_n again_o at_o his_o resurrection_n for_o although_o both_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v real_o contain_v in_o the_o chalice_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o host_n yet_o because_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n represent_v the_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n therefore_o it_o may_v more_o proper_o signify_v his_o soul_n the_o philosopher_n affirm_v dei._n agnus_n dei._n that_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o seat_n of_o the_o soul_n then_o agnus_n dei_fw-la be_v say_v that_o be_v lamb_n of_o god_n that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v mercy_n on_o us._n to_o remember_v the_o patience_n and_o mildness_n of_o christ_n who_o go_v as_o a_o lamb_n to_o the_o slaughter_n without_o resist_v or_o open_v of_o his_o mouth_n but_o permit_v himself_o to_o be_v bind_v by_o his_o enemy_n and_o if_o they_o will_v to_o nail_v he_o to_o the_o cros_n and_o in_o the_o end_n as_o a_o lamb_n bow_v his_o head_n he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n pax._fw-la io._n 19_o esa_n 16._o io._n 1._o apoc._n 5._o pax._fw-la and_o therefore_o in_o the_o scripture_n he_o be_v often_o call_v a_o lamb_n and_o s._n john_n baptist_n see_v he_o come_v towards_o he_o say_v behold_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n behold_v he_o that_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n the_o priest_n kiss_v the_o pax_n and_o then_o the_o people_n kiss_v it_o to_o commend_v charity_n peace_n and_o concord_n to_o christian_n as_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n i_o know_v not_o what_o other_o kiss_v the_o apostle_n can_v mean_v when_o he_o admonish_v the_o corinthian_n 2.13_o cor._n 2.13_o salute_v one_o another_o in_o the_o holy_a kiss_n but_o to_o mutual_a charity_n by_o some_o such_o holy_a kiss_n as_o this_o which_o be_v then_o use_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n then_o the_o priest_n prepare_v himself_o with_o devour_v prayer_n to_o receive_v the_o communion_n dignus_fw-la domine_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la dignus_fw-la and_o humble_v himself_o with_o profound_a reverence_n before_o the_o sacred_a host_n he_o say_v domine_fw-la non_fw-la sum_fw-la dignus_fw-la etc._n etc._n lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a etc._n etc._n profess_v himself_o unworthy_a to_o eat_v of_o that_o sacrifice_n in_o which_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n be_v receive_v as_o the_o humble_a centurion_n who_o require_v of_o christ_n that_o he_o will_v cure_v his_o servant_n when_o he_o answer_v that_o he_o will_v come_v and_o cure_v he_o he_o think_v it_o too_o great_a a_o honour_n for_o he_o to_o receive_v christ_n into_o his_o house_n and_o say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v enter_v under_o my_o roof_n 8._o mat._n 8._o but_o only_o say_v the_o word_n and_o my_o boy_n shall_v be_v heal_v so_o the_o priest_n go_v to_o receive_v christ_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n say_v lord_n i_o be_o not_o worthy_a that_o thou_o shall_v enter_v under_o my_o roose_n but_o only_o say_v the_o word_n and_o my_o soul_n shall_v be_v heal_v which_o word_n may_v be_v say_v by_o the_o people_n also_o when_o they_o be_v go_v to_o receive_v that_o divine_a guest_n and_o they_o be_v commend_v also_o by_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o mass_n as_o proper_a for_o that_o time_n after_o communion_n the_o chalice_n be_v purify_v and_o all_o thing_n decent_o compose_v about_o the_o altar_n the_o book_n be_v turn_v to_o the_o right_a side_n again_o postcommunion_n postcommunion_n to_o show_v that_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n after_o antichrist_n persecution_n the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o jew_n then_o follow_v the_o postcommunion_n which_o be_v the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o contain_v a_o devout_a thanksgiving_n to_o god_n for_o the_o mystery_n that_o be_v celebrate_v and_o represent_v the_o time_n after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n of_o his_o resurrection_n until_o his_o ascension_n then_o the_o priest_n come_v into_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o kiss_v it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o congratulation_n of_o both_o jew_n and_o gentile_n receive_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o turn_v again_o to_o the_o book_n he_o conclude_v the_o last_o prayer_n which_o be_v end_v he_o turn_v to_o the_o people_n and_o dismiss_v they_o saying_n item_fw-la missa_fw-la est_fw-la the_o word_n missa_fw-la which_o signifi_v the_o mass_n be_v a_o hebrew_n word_n signify_v a_o voluntary_a oblation_n 16._o deut._n 16._o as_o deut._n 16._o thou_o shall_v celebrate_v the_o festival_n day_n etc._n etc._n a_o voluntary_a oblation_n of_o thy_o hand_n which_o thou_o thalt_v offer_v wherefore_o voluntary_a oblation_n the_o hebrew_n word_n be_v missah_n hence_o may_v the_o latin_a word_n missa_fw-la be_v probable_o derive_v rather_o than_o from_o mitto_fw-la to_o send_v which_o have_v but_o little_a connexion_n with_o the_o mass_n as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v most_o likely_a that_o the_o word_n misia_n the_o mass_n be_v bring_v first_o by_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n to_o the_o latin_n and_o that_o th●y_v receive_v the_o use_n of_o it_o from_o they_o item_fw-la missa_fw-la est_fw-la be_v 〈◊〉_d towards_o the_o people_n because_o it_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o ●●nedicamus_fw-la domino_fw-la be_v say_v towards_o the_o altar_n because_o it_o be_v a_o praise_v of_o god_n as_o also_o requiescant_fw-la in_o pace_n be_v say_v towards_o the_o altar_n as_o a_o prayer_n to_o he_o the_o people_n answer_n deo_fw-la gratias_fw-la as_o give_v thanks_n or_o amen_o as_o join_v prayer_n with_o the_o priest_n last_o with_o profound_a humility_n and_o reverence_n he_o bow_v down_o before_o the_o altar_n to_o god_n beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v accept_v of_o his_o service_n and_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o have_v offer_v then_o turn_v to_o the_o people_n he_o bless_v they_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cros_n by_o which_o we_o be_v put_v in_o mind_n of_o the_o blessing_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n at_o his_o departure_n from_o they_o who_o according_a to_o the_o evangelist_n lift_v up_o his_o
it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v subject_a to_o all_o those_o alteration_n and_o corruption_n which_o all_o vulgar_a tongue_n be_v subject_a unto_o and_o which_o the_o latin_a tongue_n be_v subject_a unto_o as_o long_o as_o it_o be_v vulgar_o speak_v until_o in_o the_o end_n it_o banish_v itself_o quite_o out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o be_v leave_v as_o the_o common_a speech_n of_o no_o place_n and_o then_o be_v keep_v in_o its_o integrity_n and_o ancient_a purity_n by_o be_v keep_v from_o the_o vulgar_a and_o chief_o as_o we_o may_v well_o think_v by_o have_v the_o mass_n so_o continual_o say_v in_o laaine_n where_o as_o our_o adversary_n object_v the_o authority_n of_o s._n paul_n cor._n 1.14_o who_o seem_v as_o they_o pretend_v to_o require_v that_o the_o church_n service_n be_v in_o every_o common_a tongue_n that_o all_o the_o people_n understand_v it_o may_v answer_v amen_o the_o apostle_n never_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v the_o church_n service_n in_o that_o place_n nor_o meddle_v with_o the_o language_n of_o it_o but_o speak_v there_o of_o quite_o another_o thing_n to_o wit_v the_o gift_n of_o strange_a tongue_n and_o of_o the_o interpret_n of_o they_o which_o interpretation_n be_v a_o different_a gift_n and_o which_o the_o speaker_n himself_o sometime_o have_v not_o these_o and_o other_o like_a grace_n be_v give_v to_o some_o in_o those_o time_n the_o people_n meet_v together_o to_o hear_v they_o exercise_v but_o by_o little_a and_o little_o they_o begin_v to_o be_v abuse_v and_o fall_v into_o disorder_n in_o so_o much_o that_o some_o will_v speak_v that_o which_o can_v be_v interpret_v by_o none_o so_o that_o it_o have_v no_o sense_n that_o can_v require_v amen_o to_o be_v answer_v to_o but_o be_v as_o not_o speak_v at_o all_o none_o be_v inspire_v to_o interpret_v it_o now_o what_o connexion_n have_v this_o with_o the_o public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v without_o any_o disorder_n at_o all_o and_o in_o no_o such_o strange_a tongue_n but_o in_o a_o know_a and_o the_o most_o honour_a of_o all_o tongue_n which_o be_v intelligible_a in_o itself_o and_o most_o universal_o understand_v and_o interpret_v by_o thousand_o and_o which_o have_v not_o only_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n allow_v of_o it_o but_o also_o command_v it_o and_o therefore_o with_o all_o reason_n shall_v be_v answer_v with_o amen_o which_o the_o other_o be_v fall_v into_o disorder_n can_v not_o in_o reason_n be_v answer_v with_o it_o be_v to_o the_o edification_n of_o none_o as_o be_v understand_v by_o none_o when_o the_o miracle_n shall_v have_v consist_v in_o understanding_n and_o interpret_n of_o it_o i_o have_v hear_v of_o some_o who_o have_v be_v so_o bold_a as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o priest_n pray_v in_o a_o tongue_n which_o the_o people_n understande_v not_o may_v curse_v they_o for_o any_o thing_n they_o know_v as_o well_o as_o bless_v they_o but_o this_o be_v a_o bold_a and_o irreverent_a speech_n for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o irreverence_n to_o the_o law_n and_o to_o lawyer_n to_o talk_v of_o their_o curse_v of_o their_o ignorant_a client_n when_o they_o plead_v for_o they_o in_o term_n which_o they_o understande_v not_o much_o more_o be_v it_o a_o irreverence_n to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o to_o priest_n that_o have_v the_o keep_n of_o it_o to_o talk_v of_o their_o curse_v of_o the_o people_n when_o they_o pray_v for_o they_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o it_o be_v a_o very_a weak_a speech_n and_o unworthy_a of_o a_o wise_a man_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o accommodate_v every_o word_n to_o the_o understanding_n of_o all_o man_n and_o what_o shall_v they_o say_v when_o they_o understand_v not_o and_o what_o shall_v deaf_a man_n say_v that_o hear_v nor_o it_o be_v to_o banish_v all_o order_n quite_o out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n to_o make_v it_o subject_a to_o every_o particular_a man_n censure_n the_o priest_n if_o he_o change_v nothing_o but_o say_v what_o the_o church_n command_v can_v enrse_v none_o and_o we_o can_v in_o reason_n and_o charity_n suspect_v he_o of_o change_v any_o thing_n except_o he_o be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o luther_n or_o caluin_n that_o dare_v take_v upon_o they_o to_o change_v what_o they_o list_v in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o begin_v new_a church_n besi●●●s_n it_o be_v not_o such_o a_o rare_a thing_n in_o catholic_a country_n as_o it_o be_v here_o for_o lay_v people_n to_o understande_v latin_a i_o remember_v that_o i_o have_v meet_v with_o a_o ploughman_n hold_v his_o plough_n who_o direct_v i_o in_o my_o way_n describe_v it_o in_o very_o elegant_a latin_a and_o with_o poor_a beggar_n who_o have_v be_v very_o ready_a in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n mechanike_a man_n in_o some_o place_n understande_v it_o so_o frequent_o that_o mass_n can_v hardly_o be_v say_v among_o a_o indifferent_a number_n of_o people_n but_o some_o that_o be_v present_a will_v understande_v latin_a final_o experience_n will_v answer_v all_o objection_n in_o that_o the_o mass_n be_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o high_a and_o honourable_a language_n and_o with_o those_o devout_a caeremony_n be_v full_a of_o edification_n and_o much_o more_o move_v to_o devotion_n then_o any_o thing_n which_o our_o enemy_n have_v this_o those_o that_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n do_v present_o find_v in_o themselves_o and_o those_o that_o be_v pervert_v from_o it_o common_o show_v in_o the_o looseness_n of_o their_o life_n that_o there_o be_v no_o comparison_n betwixt_o the_o devotion_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o prayer_n of_o protestant_n but_o only_o such_o as_o be_v betwixt_o true_a and_o paint_a fire_n the_o one_o of_o which_o warm_v indeed_o the_o other_o warm_v not_o at_o all_o but_o rather_o cool_v as_o one_o shall_v grow_v cold_a by_o hold_v his_o hand_n to_o a_o paint_a fire_n now_o it_o be_v fit_v that_o we_o speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o of_o the_o frvit_n and_o benefit_n which_o be_v gain_v by_o the_o denout_n hear_v of_o mass_n there_o be_v not_o any_o mean_n in_o the_o world_n so_o efficacious_a for_o the_o obtain_n of_o benefit_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n as_o the_o mass_n be_v both_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n the_o high_a act_n of_o worship_n that_o can_v be_v give_v to_o god_n and_o also_o as_o it_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n so_o eminent_a and_o excel_v all_o other_o sacrifice_n that_o the_o dignity_n efficacy_n and_o value_n of_o it_o can_v not_o be_v express_v all_o benefit_n be_v infinite_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v grant_v for_o it_o then_o for_o any_o thing_n that_o we_o can_v do_v but_o to_o speak_v more_o in_o particular_a first_o our_o faith_n be_v confirm_v and_o our_o mind_n be_v elevate_v to_o a_o feruerous_a zeal_n of_o that_o which_o all_o christian_n profess_v when_o we_o commemorate_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n in_o that_o devout_a and_o mysterious_a manner_n as_o by_o the_o principal_a and_o most_o express_a commemoration_n which_o the_o church_n have_v of_o it_o and_o we_o be_v excite_v to_o a_o firm_a and_o constant_a belief_n of_o that_o sacred_a verity_n which_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v allwais_o believe_v of_o the_o true_a real_a and_o substantial_a presence_n of_o the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o of_o his_o whole_a humane_a nature_n unite_v to_o the_o divine_a word_n in_o the_o b._n sacrament_n of_o eucharist_n which_o as_o it_o be_v a_o mystery_n above_o the_o understanding_n of_o man_n and_o not_o effect_v by_o any_o power_n of_o nature_n but_o by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n so_o by_o it_o we_o yield_v our_o understanding_n captius_fw-la as_o we_o ought_v unto_o the_o divine_a power_n to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n and_o by_o hear_v of_o mass_n we_o be_v not_o only_o confirm_v in_o this_o mystery_n but_o in_o all_o other_o point_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n for_o what_o be_v the_o whole_a mass_n but_o a_o daily_o exercise_v and_o train_v up_o of_o christian_n in_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o he_o do_v and_o suffer_v for_o we_o there_o be_v nothing_o there_o to_o be_v see_v or_o hear_v but_o the_o chief_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n represent_v the_o divine_a praise_n celebrate_v his_o benefit_n acknowledge_v and_o his_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n devout_o implore_v all_o with_o relation_n to_o some_o passage_n of_o his_o life_n or_o death_n second_o at_o mass_n we_o be_v comfort_v and_o encourage_v to_o hope_v confide_v in_o god_n that_o have_v leave_v unto_o the_o world_n so_o dear_a a_o pledge_n as_o his_o only_a son_n he_o will_v grant_v we_o the_o remission_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o will_v give_v we_o in_o
the_o church_n have_v not_o forbid_v to_o drink_v but_o it_o have_v forbid_v to_o eat_v all_o kind_n of_o meat_n and_o therefore_o apley_v and_o fruit_n be_v not_o to_o be_v eat_v out_o of_o nail_n fast_v day_n begin_v at_o twelve_o a_o clock_n in_o the_o morning_n and_o end_n at_o twelve_o a_o clock_n at_o night_n contain_v four_o and_o twenty_o hour_n ancient_o they_o fast_v from_o supper_n time_n on_o the_o day_n before_o till_o supper_n time_n again_o on_o the_o next_o day_n without_o eat_v of_o any_o thing_n but_o man_n complexion_n grow_v weak_a and_o weak_a and_o perhaps_o their_o devotion_n also_o they_o begin_v to_o take_v their_o supper_n soon_o on_o fast_v day_n until_o by_o little_a and_o little_a they_o bring_v supper_n to_o noon_n time_n and_o custom_n have_v now_o prevail_v to_o take_v a_o little_a collation_n at_o night_n as_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o church_n so_o that_o the_o mail_n which_o we_o have_v on_o fast_a day_n be_v not_o proper_o a_o dinner_n but_o a_o supper_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v lawful_o be_v differ_v as_o late_o as_o we_o will_v but_o it_o may_v not_o be_v take_v before_o the_o time_n allow_v of_o by_o custom_n which_o be_v at_o soon_o about_o noon_n time_n final_o scandal_n scandal_n for_o the_o manner_n of_o fast_v the_o custom_n of_o place_n be_v to_o be_v obscrue_v and_o we_o must_v be_v very_o careful_a that_o we_o give_v no_o scandal_n to_o other_o especial_o to_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n who_o make_v always_o the_o worst_a of_o our_o action_n and_o therefore_o many_o thing_n which_o be_v lawful_a be_v not_o always_o expedient_a to_o be_v do_v it_o be_v in_o itself_o lawful_a for_o saint_n paul_n to_o eat_v flesh_n and_o of_o that_o flesh_n which_o be_v immolate_a to_o idol_n for_o the_o flesh_n be_v no_o worse_o yet_o he_o will_v rather_o never_o eat_v flesh_n at_o all_o ●_o cor._n 1._o ●_o then_o scandalize_v any_o by_o ●ating_v of_o it_o if_o meal_n say_v he_o scandalize_v my_o brother_n it_o ill_a never_n eat_v flesh_n lest_o i_o scandalize_v my_o brother_n the_o second_o precept_n to_o keep_v holy_a day_n in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n diverse_a holy_a day_n be_v command_v to_o be_v keep_v 10._o joan._n 10._o and_o be_v then_o observe_v by_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n 1_o apoc._n 1_o and_o our_o bless_a saviour_n have_v allow_v of_o they_o honour_v their_o solemnity_n by_o his_o own_o presence_n at_o they_o as_o he_o do_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o temple_n institute_v by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o judas_n machabaeus_n the_o scripture_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o dominical_a day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v our_o lord_n day_n or_o our_o sunday_n to_o have_v be_v keep_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o church_n then_o take_v away_o the_o saturday_n sabaoth_v which_o god_n first_o command_v in_o remembrance_n of_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n and_o institute_v sunday_n sabaoth_o or_o rather_o transfer_v saturdays_n sabaoth_v unto_o sunday_n sabaoth_v in_o honour_n of_o the_o redemption_n of_o the_o world_n as_o a_o great_a mystery_n and_o i_o do_v not_o hear_v of_o any_o heretic_n now_o in_o the_o world_n that_o refuse_v to_o keep_v sunday_n for_o sabaoth_n with_o what_o consequence_n then_o can_v they_o refuse_v to_o keep_v the_o other_o holy_a day_n or_o any_o other_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n they_o all_o have_v the_o same_o authority_n that_o sundayihath_n and_o the_o same_o obligation_n yet_o protestant_n allow_v the_o obligation_n of_o sunday_n solemnity_n and_o dare_v never_o attempt_v to_o alter_v it_o or_o to_o deny_v the_o obligation_n of_o it_o have_v no_o other_o warrant_n for_o it_o but_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o then_o govern_v the_o christian_a world_n and_o have_v the_o same_o for_o other_o holy_a day_n they_o reject_v they_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o they_o have_v forsake_v the_o church_n that_o be_v alley_n in_o the_o world_n to_o begin_v a_o church_n which_o then_o be_v not_o at_o all_o in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n have_v forsake_v they_o and_o leave_v they_o to_o such_o inconsequence_n of_o their_o own_o wit_n constit_fw-la clem._n l._n 8._o apost_n constit_fw-la saint_n clement_n who_o live_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o be_v disciple_n unto_o saint_n peter_n and_o coadiutor_n to_o saint_n paul_n and_o who_o write_v as_o a_o eyewitnesse_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v then_o observe_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n deliver_v that_o the_o apostle_n give_v order_n for_o the_o observe_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o their_o fellow_n apostle_n and_o in_o particular_a of_o saint_n steven_n as_o also_o of_o some_o other_o martyr_n 75._o epiph._n haer_fw-mi 75._o saint_n epiphanius_n denounce_v aërius_n for_o a_o haeretike_n in_o that_o he_o reject_v the_o holy_a day_n of_o the_o church_n by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v how_o weak_a that_o objection_n of_o protestant_n be_v which_o aërius_n also_o object_v out_o of_o the_o apostle_n word_n 4._o gal._n 4._o yoü_fw-la observe_v day_n month_n time_n and_o year_n where_o the_o apostle_n speak_v against_o the_o superstitious_a observation_n of_o heathen_n from_o which_o young_a christian_n at_o their_o first_o conversion_n be_v hardly_o wean_v in_o those_o time_n and_o therefore_o he_o rebuke_v they_o but_o i_o have_v say_v enough_o for_o this_o and_o all_o other_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n when_o i_o show_v that_o they_o be_v the_o precept_n of_o god_n and_o have_v divine_a authority_n this_o precept_n include_v two_o thing_n to_o wit_n to_o abstain_v from_o servile_a work_n and_o to_o heat_n mass_n for_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a not_o to_o work_v corporal_a work_n on_o holy_a day_n but_o we_o must_v also_o sanctify_v they_o with_o some_o special_a good_a work_n as_o day_n particular_o dedicate_v to_o the_o service_n and_o honour_n of_o god_n and_o mass_n be_v the_o chief_a high_a and_o most_o eminent_a worship_n which_o can_v be_v give_v to_o he_o as_o his_o only_a true_a sacrifice_n therefore_o the_o church_n have_v command_v that_o every_o one_o be_v present_a to_o offer_v up_o at_o least_o one_o mass_n every_o holy_a day_n and_o this_o be_v as_o great_a a_o obligation_n as_o to_o observe_v lend_v or_o any_o other_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n oblige_v under_o a_o mortal_a sin_n s._n 2._o 2._o par._n chron._n tit_n 9_o c._n 10_o §._o 2._o anthony_n archbishop_n of_o florence_n relate_v of_o two_o man_n who_o go_v out_o to_o foul_a upon_o a_o holy_a day_n they_o hear_v a_o voice_n that_o cry_v strike_v he_o strike_v he_o and_o the_o one_o of_o they_o that_o have_v not_o hear_v mass_n be_v present_o strike_v dead_a with_o a_o thunder_n bolt_n and_o his_o astonish_a companion_n hear_v the_o voice_n to_o continue_v still_o be_v comfort_v with_o another_o which_o answer_v i_o can_v not_o strike_v he_o for_o that_o he_o have_v hear_v verbum_fw-la caro_fw-la factum_fw-la est_fw-la intimate_v that_o he_o have_v hear_v a_o entire_a mass_n to_o the_o end_n among_o holiday_n those_o be_v observe_v as_o most_o solemn_a in_o the_o church_n that_o have_v more_o immediate_a relation_n to_o god_n himself_o we_o keep_v also_o the_o feast_n of_o our_o bless_a lady_n and_o of_o the_o angel_n and_o saint_n to_o honour_n god_n by_o they_o that_o as_o they_o help_v we_o and_o rejoice_v at_o our_o good_a so_o we_o may_v praise_v their_o virtue_n and_o rejoice_v in_o their_o glory_n beside_o by_o celebrate_v their_o feast_n we_o be_v incite_v to_o the_o imitation_n of_o their_o life_n and_o to_o aspire_v to_o that_o state_n of_o bless_v which_o they_o enjoy_v the_o three_o precept_n to_o confess_v our_o sin_n to_o our_o ordinary_a pastor_n or_o to_o another_o with_o his_o leave_n at_o least_o once_o a_o year_n by_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v boundnoe_v often_o to_o confession_n than_o once_o in_o the_o year_n but_o many_o circumstance_n may_v occur_v in_o which_o by_o divine_a precept_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o confess_v often_o first_o in_o all_o danger_n of_o life_n as_o when_o we_o be_v dangerous_o si●ke_v and_o as_o those_o that_o be_v condemn_v to_o die_v soldier_n also_o tradesman_n and_o traveller_n when_o they_o be_v to_o go_v upon_o any_o dangerous_a attempt_n or_o journey_n final_o in_o all_o peril_n of_o life_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o prepare_v ourselves_o for_o death_n and_o if_o ●e_v be_v conscious_a of_o any_o mortal_a sin_n in_o such_o danger_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o go_v to_o confession_n as_o the_o ordinary_a mean_n which_o god_n have_v institute_v for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n we_o be_v bind_v also_o to_o go_v to_o confession_n allwais_o before_o we_o receive_v any_o of_o theseaven_n sacrament_n if_o we_o be_v guilty_a of_o mortal_a sin_n because_o
they_o be_v as_o due_a to_o they_o as_o wage_n be_v to_o workman_n and_o we_o may_v speak_v by_o experience_n to_o they_o that_o know_v not_o the_o truth_n that_o our_o labour_n be_v without_o comparison_n great_a than_o the_o labour_n of_o day_n tale_n workman_n i_o have_v no_o more_o to_o say_v of_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n you_o have_v see_v first_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v divine_a and_o her_o precept_n to_o oblige_v under_o amortall_a sin_n second_o you_o have_v in_o particular_a the_o declaration_n of_o they_o let_v we_o keep_v they_o with_o devotion_n and_o zeal_n of_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o church_n that_o command_v they_o she_o be_v the_o immaculate_a spouse_n and_o glorious_a bride_n of_o god_n she_o be_v our_o mother_n and_o never_o be_v there_o any_o mother_n so_o disirous_a of_o her_o child_n good_a nor_o so_o efficacious_o procure_v their_o true_a preferment_n as_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v we_o the_o mother_n of_o the_o zebedoe_n be_v solicitous_a for_o her_o son_n with_o christ_n ask_v to_o have_v they_o near_o he_o in_o his_o kingdom_n but_o she_o know_v not_o what_o she_o ask_v the_o catholic_a church_n ask_v nothing_o for_o her_o child_n but_o that_o which_o god_n will_v have_v she_o to_o ask_v and_o which_o he_o inspire_v she_o how_o to_o procure_v and_o which_o they_o if_o they_o will_v obey_v she_o be_v sure_a to_o obtain_v and_o that_o be_v the_o high_a honour_n and_o great_a felicity_n of_o all_o honour_n and_o felicity_n to_o be_v make_v indeed_o the_o courtier_n and_o favourite_n of_o christ_n in_o his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n let_v we_o then_o obey_v she_o 3._o eccli_n 3._o as_o he_o that_o gather_v treasure_n so_o he_o that_o honour_v his_o mother_n and_o then_o a_o little_a after_o he_o be_v curse_v of_o god_n that_o do_v exasperate_v his_o mother_n how_o much_o then_o ought_v we_o to_o honour_v the_o whole_a catholic_a church_n and_o with_o what_o reverence_n to_o receive_v her_o precept_n the_o twelfth_a discourse_n of_o sin_n i_o have_v now_o a_o most_o hidous_a and_o fearful_a monster_n to_o set_v before_o your_o eye_n i_o mean_v to_o describe_v unto_o you_o the_o evil_a of_o sin_n which_o be_v indeed_o the_o most_o hideous_a monster_n of_o the_o world_n so_o deform_v that_o neither_o man_n nor_o angel_n can_v comprehend_v the_o deformity_n of_o it_o none_o but_o god_n can_v right_o understande_v it_o and_o he_o understanding_n it_o be_v move_v with_o infinite_a detestation_n and_o aversion_n from_o it_o as_o from_o that_o which_o be_v most_o opposite_a of_o all_o thing_n to_o his_o goodness_n and_o most_o hurtful_a to_o his_o creature_n i_o will_v stir_v up_o in_o your_o heart_n a_o vehement_a abhor_v and_o utter_a renounce_n of_o sin_n this_o be_v all_o the_o fruit_n say_v the_o prophet_n that_o sin_n be_v take_v away_o 27._o esa_n 27._o and_o this_o be_v all_o the_o fruit_n which_o i_o desire_v and_o labour_n for_o in_o you_o and_o which_o you_o ought_v to_o labour_v for_o in_o yourselves_o to_o have_v your_o sin_n take_v away_o fot_o this_o we_o preach_v catechise_v and_o exhort_v that_o we_o may_v detest_v all_o sin_n and_o fly_v it_o as_o the_o most_o dreadful_a monster_n in_o the_o world_n we_o may_v conceive_v something_o of_o the_o power_n and_o malice_n of_o sin_n by_o the_o vision_n which_o saint_n john_n have_v in_o the_o twelve_o of_o the_o apocalypse_n 12._o apoc._n 12._o first_o he_o see_v a_o very_a glorious_a woman_n so_o glorious_a that_o she_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n and_o have_v the_o moon_n under_o her_o foot_n and_o upon_o her_o head_n a_o crown_n of_o twelve_o star_n then_o there_o appear_v another_o sign_n in_o the_o heaven_n a_o great_a dragon_n with_o seven_o head_n and_o ten_o horn_n and_o seven_o diadem_n on_o his_o head_n and_o this_o dragon_n be_v so_o strong_a and_o powerful_a that_o he_o draw_v down_o from_o heaven_n the_o three_o part_n of_o the_o star_n and_o cast_v they_o to_o the_o earth_n and_o assalt_v the_o glorious_a woman_n for_o all_o her_o glory_n he_o put_v she_o to_o flight_n and_o although_o she_o have_v give_v she_o the_o wing_n of_o a_o eagle_n to_o fly_v into_o the_o desert_n yet_o the_o dragon_n send_v forth_o of_o his_o mouth_n a_o flood_n of_o water_n overtake_v she_o with_o they_o and_o have_v swallow_v she_o up_o if_o she_o have_v not_o get_v help_n by_o this_o dragon_n we_o may_v understande_v something_o of_o the_o power_n and_o malice_n of_o sin_n sin_n be_v the_o enemy_n of_o all_o glory_n it_o ascend_v into_o the_o heaven_n and_o throw_v down_o from_o thence_o the_o celestial_a angel_n and_o make_v they_o who_o be_v as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n in_o natural_a beauty_n to_o wander_v now_o upon_o the_o earth_n and_o under_o it_o full_a of_o shame_n and_o pain_n the_o church_n far_o more_o glorious_a in_o the_o sanctity_n of_o soul_n than_o the_o sun_n be_v in_o corporal_a brightness_n and_o which_o may_v well_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o glorious_a woman_n i●_n sometime_o so_o persecute_v by_o the_o sin_n of_o infidel_n and_o evil_a catholics_n that_o although_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n be_v never_o quite_o banish_v out_o of_o the_o world_n yet_o in_o some_o place_n it_o be_v so_o obscure_v that_o the_o church_n in_o those_o place_n be_v drive_v into_o corner_n as_o it_o be_v into_o the_o desert_n sin_n be_v that_o monster_n which_o bring_v the_o flood_n of_o all_o humane_a misery_n and_o a_o real_a flood_n of_o water_n upon_o the_o church_n in_o the_o deluge_n and_o have_v quite_o swallow_v she_o up_o if_o god_n have_v not_o miraculous_o save_v she_o sin_n have_v bring_v plague_n upon_o house_n city_n and_o kingdom_n and_o tage_v in_o the_o end_n so_o violent_o destroy_v of_o soul_n that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v incarnate_v to_o destroy_v it_o it_o make_v the_o sun_n to_o be_v eclipse_v with_o a_o horrible_a darkness_n the_o roof_n of_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o rock_n there_o about_o to_o be_v rend_v in_o piece_n the_o ground_n to_o tremble_v grave_n to_o open_a and_o dead_a body_n to_o rise_v again_o at_o the_o destruction_n of_o it_o it_o make_v our_o saviour_n to_o weep_v upon_o jerusalem_n and_o it_o make_v jerusalem_n within_o a_o while_n to_o be_v as_o a_o stink_a grave_n that_o swell_v up_o to_o a_o incredible_a height_n with_o the_o multitude_n of_o dead_a carcase_n which_o be_v in_o it_o it_o make_v thousand_o of_o that_o people_n to_o languish_v away_o with_o famine_n and_o hundred_o of_o thousand_o to_o come_v into_o their_o enemy_n hand_n and_o to_o become_v subject_a to_o their_o slavery_n and_o torment_n sin_n have_v bring_v haeresys_o into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n and_o by_o they_o cruel_a blood_n ●hed_v among_o christian_n it_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o dissension_n and_o all_o the_o evil_n that_o ever_o be_v be_v cause_v by_o sin_n it_o make_v the_o proud_a to_o be_v contemn_v the_o envious_a to_o be_v envy_a the_o contentious_a to_o be_v kill_v the_o covetous_a to_o be_v full_a of_o perplexity_n the_o luxurious_a to_o despair_v and_o all_o sinner_n to_o detest_v that_o in_o the_o end_n which_o once_o they_o love_v and_o to_o be_v full_a of_o horror_n when_o they_o come_v to_o die_v wise_a and_o holy_a man_n have_v live_v hard_o and_o austere_a life_n to_o keep_v themselves_o clear_a from_o sin_n and_o have_v choose_v to_o submit_v themselves_o rather_o to_o the_o cruel_a death_n that_o sinner_n can_v devise_v to_o inflict_v then_o to_o be_v sinner_n with_o they_o these_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o sin_n what_o monster_n can_v ever_o do_v the_o like_a if_o those_o tall_a and_o strong_a man_n that_o terrify_v the_o israelite_n be_v call_v monster_n for_o their_o extraordinary_a strength_n and_o tallnesse_n why_o may_v not_o we_o call_v sin_n a_o monster_n which_o have_v such_o power_n 13._o num._n 13._o and_o if_o excess_n or_o defect_n or_o disorder_n of_o member_n make_v monster_n how_o monstruous_a be_v sin_n that_o be_v the_o original_a cause_n of_o all_o the_o excess_n defect_n and_o disorder_n that_o ever_o be_v it_o pervert_v the_o order_n of_o all_o our_o action_n it_o corrupt_v our_o nature_n and_o even_o as_o poison_v put_v into_o wine_n intoxicate_v it_o quite_o and_o change_v it_o all_o into_o poison_n so_o sin_n corrupt_v all_o that_o be_v good_a in_o our_o soul_n and_o all_o our_o good_a work_n be_v poison_v with_o one_o mortal_a sin_n go_v down_o with_o it_o into_o hell_n what_o reason_n then_o have_v we_o to_o abhor_v and_o to_o fly_v from_o sin_n if_o we_o look_v behind_o we_o and_o see_v a_o lion_n beer_n or_o terrible_a serpent_n pursue_v we_o at_o our_o heel_n our_o heart_n will_v faint_v present_o our_o whole_a body_n will_v
which_o we_o lose_v by_o they_o be_v without_o comparison_n more_o to_o be_v value_v then_o his_o be_v and_o therefore_o be_v we_o much_o more_o to_o be_v blame_v beside_o that_o which_o he_o do_v be_v partly_o constrain_v perhaps_o to_o save_v his_o life_n but_o we_o have_v no_o need_n of_o the_o sin_n which_o we_o commit_v the_o pleasure_n which_o we_o take_v do_v we_o no_o good_a but_o much_o hurt_n it_o save_v not_o our_o life_n but_o deprive_v we_o of_o a_o far_o sweet_a life_n than_o this_o be_v 20._o job._n 20._o the_o praise_n of_o the_o impious_a be_v short_a and_o the_o joy_n of_o the_o hypocrite_n as_o it_o be_v for_o a_o moment_n it_o be_v also_o a_o base_a and_o contemptible_a delight_n bring_v shame_n and_o reproach_n even_o in_o this_o world_n and_o therefore_o we_o see_v sinner_n to_o devise_v sleight_n and_o shift_n to_o conceal_v their_o sin_n and_o to_o hide_v they_o from_o other_o every_o one_o that_o do_v evil_a hate_v the_o light_n 3._o joan._n 3._o say_v christ_n king_n david_n have_v filthy_o adulterate_v with_o vtias_n his_o wife_n as_o soon_o as_o he_o perceive_v she_o to_o be_v with_o child_n in_o the_o absence_n of_o her_o husband_n he_o send_v present_o for_o he_o to_o come_v home_o that_o he_o may_v father_n it_o and_o he_o come_v out_o of_o the_o camp_n to_o he_o he_o wish_v he_o to_o go_v to_o his_o house_n and_o to_o rest_v himself_o but_o the_o goodman_n although_o he_o suspect_v nothing_o of_o his_o wife_n disloyalty_n refuse_v to_o go_v home_o but_o as_o a_o soldier_n will_v lie_v before_o the_o king_n gate_n then_o the_o king_n make_v he_o drink_v that_o he_o may_v desire_v more_o the_o company_n of_o his_o wife_n and_o when_o he_o see_v that_o by_o no_o mean_n he_o can_v get_v he_o to_o go_v to_o she_o he_o dispatch_v he_o away_o with_o letter_n to_o the_o general_a in_o which_o he_o command_v he_o to_o be_v put_v into_o some_o place_n of_o danger_n that_o the_o husband_n be_v kill_v he_o may_v marry_v the_o adulteress_n to_o legitimate_a the_o child_n all_o these_o shift_n do_v king_n david_n use_v to_o hide_v his_o sinne●_n which_o then_o shame_v and_o trouble_v he_o and_o when_o he_o can_v not_o hide_v it_o to_o lessen_v it_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o world_n adam_n clothe_v with_o innocency_n although_o naked_a be_v ashamed_a of_o nothing_o for_o than_o he_o have_v no_o cause_n of_o shame_n but_o fall_v into_o sin_n he_o fall_v into_o shame_n and_o have_v reason_n to_o be_v ashamed_a and_o to_o hide_v his_o nakedness_n he_o cover_v himself_o with_o the_o leaf_n of_o a_o tree_n by_o which_o we_o may_v see_v how_o base_a and_o ungratfull_a we_o be_v to_o god_n that_o as_o deceitful_a short_a and_o sordid_a as_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n be_v we_o prefer_v it_o notwithstanding_o before_o his_o divine_a goodness_n and_o forsake_v he_o to_o choose_v it_o this_o the_o holy_a ghost_n complain_v of_o in_o sinner_n when_o he_o say_v they_o violate_v i_o to_o my_o people_n for_o a_o handful_n of_o barley_n 13_o ezec._n 13_o that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o a_o thing_n of_o no_o worth_n the_o sixth_o evil_n of_o sin_n be_v that_o it_o bring_v remorse_n and_o terror_n of_o conscience_n and_o must_v cause_v at_o the_o best_a the_o sorrow_n of_o repentance_n before_o that_o it_o can_v be_v forgive_v and_o this_o remorse_n and_o terror_n of_o conscience_n can_v be_v avoid_v by_o sinner_n for_o as_o long_o as_o man_n be_v reasonable_a creature_n they_o must_v hate_v that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o reason_n and_o have_v a_o natural_a feel_n and_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o when_o they_o have_v offend_v he_o present_o without_o dispute_v of_o it_o they_o condemn_v themselves_o as_o guilty_a of_o punishment_n and_o not_o know_v how_o nor_o when_o their_o punishment_n shall_v be_v they_o be_v always_o in_o fear_n that_o the_o scripture_n say_v 26._o leu._n 26._o the_o sound_n of_o a_o fly_a leaf_n shall_v terrify_v they_o so_o when_o cain_n have_v slay_v his_o brother_n he_o run_v away_o out_o of_o the_o company_n of_o man_n and_o go_v hang_v down_o his_o head_n like_o a_o desperate_a vagabond_n think_v that_o every_o man_n who_o he_o meet_v with_o will_v murder_v he_o and_o cry_v out_o to_o god_n 4._o gen._n 4._o loe_o now_o thou_o do_v cast_v i_o out_o this_o day_n from_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o from_o thy_o face_n i_o shall_v be_v hide_v and_o i_o shall_v be_v a_o vagabond_n and_o fugitive_n on_o the_o earth_n every_o one_o therefore_o that_o find_v i_o shall_v kill_v i_o a_o secure_a mind_n say_v the_o holy_a proverb_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o continual_a feast_n 15._o prou._n 15._o and_o we_o may_v say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o a_o guilty_a conscience_n be_v a_o continual_a worm_n and_o thorn_n at_o the_o heart_n or_o as_o a_o poison_a arrow_n that_o stick_v in_o the_o flesh_n vex_v with_o pain_n and_o fear_n of_o death_n 37._o psal_n 37._o thy_o arrow_n be_v fast_o stick_v in_o i_o there_o be_v no_o health_n in_o my_o flesh_n at_o the_o face_n of_o thy_o wrath_n my_o bone_n have_v no_o peace_n at_o the_o face_n of_o my_o sin_n because_o my_o iniquity_n have_v go_v over_o my_o head_n and_o as_o a_o heavy_a burden_n be_v become_v heavy_a upon_o i_o say_v king_n david_n and_o so_o great_a be_v the_o sorrow_n which_o he_o conceive_v for_o his_o sin_n that_o he_o say_v his_o jaw_n be_v make_v hoarse_a with_o cry_v as_o a_o man_n that_o be_v fall_v from_o some_o high_a precipice_n lie_v wound_v and_o cry_v our_o with_o all_o his_o force_n for_o some_o to_o come_v to_o he_o so_o david_n fall_v into_o sin_n double_v and_o redouble_v his_o cry_n to_o god_n for_o pardon_n and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v true_a in_o he_o 5._o prou._n 5._o the_o lip_n of_o a_o harlot_n as_o a_o honey_n comb_n distil_v but_o her_o late_a end_n be_v bitter_a as_o worm_n wood_n and_o sharp_a as_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n and_o so_o be_v all_o the_o pleasure_n of_o sin_n sweet_a for_o a_o moment_n but_o in_o the_o end_n bitter_a and_o sharp_a that_o we_o find_v it_o by_o experience_n to_o be_v true_a in_o all_o sin_n laughter_n shall_v be_v mingle_v with_o sorrow_n 14._o prou._n 14._o and_o mourning_n occupe_v the_o latter_a end_n of_o joy_n and_o that_o man_n that_o shall_v purpose_n with_o himself_o to_o put_v away_o this_o remorse_n of_o conscience_n and_o thought_n of_o repentance_n sin_n the_o ●_o evil_n of_o sin_n be_v in_o the_o most_o desperate_a condition_n of_o all_o man_n as_o be_v least_o sensible_a of_o the_o danger_n which_o he_o be_v in_o and_o this_o be_v the_o last_o evil_n which_o i_o will_v mention_v of_o sin_n that_o every_o sin_n contain_v so_o many_o and_o great_a evil_n as_o it_o do_v one_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o another_o and_o draw_v on_o to_o another_o worse_a than_o itself_o in_o punishment_n of_o it_o and_o the_o last_o and_o great_a punishment_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o world_n be_v when_o a_o sinner_n by_o much_o sin_v have_v his_o hart_n so_o harden_v against_o god_n and_o against_o his_o own_o salvation_n that_o he_o contemn_v all_o and_o resolve_v to_o live_v like_o a_o beast_n without_o regard_n of_o conscience_n or_o future_a life_n sin_n say_v saint_n gregory_n by_o its_o own_o weight_n draw_v into_o another_o sin_n ezech._n super_fw-la ezech._n if_o it_o be_v not_o present_o blot_v out_o with_o repentance_n this_o be_v the_o depth_n and_o contour_n of_o all_o evil_n and_o the_o extreme_a evil_n of_o sin_n that_o as_o heavy_a weight_n draw_v downward_o and_o the_o low_a they_o go_v the_o more_o force_n they_o have_v and_o draw_v more_o so_o sin_n draw_v on_o from_o sin_n to_o sin_n and_o the_o deep_a that_o we_o descend_v into_o sin_n with_o more_o inclination_n and_o violence_n we_o be_v draw_v into_o it_o until_o we_o come_v in_o the_o end_n to_o a_o absolute_a contempt_n of_o all_o goodness_n and_o therefore_o the_o prophet_n zachary_n call_v sin_n talentum_fw-la plumbi_fw-la 5._o zac._n 5._o a_o talon_n that_o be_v a_o huge_a weight_n of_o lead_n thus_o the_o heathen_a philosopher_n according_a to_o saint_n paul_n be_v replenish_v with_o all_o iniquity_n because_o they_o wilful_o blind_v themselves_o and_o will_v not_o seek_v after_o true_a knowledge_n which_o be_v the_o case_n of_o many_o among_o we_o as_o they_o like_v not_o say_v he_o to_o have_v god_n in_o knowledge_n god_n deliver_v they_o to_o a_o reprobate_a sense_n 1._o rom._n 1._o to_o do_v those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o convenient_a replenish_v with_o all_o iniquity_n and_o therefore_o say_v s._n chrysostome_n some_o be_v say_v to_o have_v have_v their_o heart_n harden_v in_o this_o world_n because_o
that_o suppose_v he_o have_v time_n of_o repentance_n grant_v whether_o he_o shall_v make_v good_a use_n of_o it_o or_o nee_n and_o if_o he_o repent_v for_o that_o time_n whether_o he_o shall_v not_o fall_v again_o into_o the_o same_o sin_n for_o one_o sin_n dispose_v to_o another_o and_o if_o it_o be_v forgive_v the_o first_o time_n we_o be_v not_o sure_a of_o pardon_n the_o second_o or_o three_o time_n which_o we_o commit_v it_o one_o sin_n damn_v all_o mankind_n to_o death_n and_o to_o loose_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o the_o devil_n tell_v eve_n that_o she_o shall_v not_o die_v if_o she_o sin_v but_o it_o be_v a_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o so_o it_o prove_v god_n have_v say_v in_o what_o day_n soever_o thou_o shall_v eat_v thou_o shall_v dy●_n and_o eat_v she_o sin_v 2._o gen._n 2._o and_o die_v it_o be_v a_o delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o take_v from_o we_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n after_o sin_n and_o for_o any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o he_o shall_v not_o die_v before_o he_o repent_v he_o be_v then_o subject_a every_o moment_n to_o death_n s._n 10._o hom._n 22._o in_o 2._o ad_fw-la cor._n c._n 10._o john_n chrysostome_n they_o say_v to_o themselves_o god_n have_v grant_v the_o benefit_n of_o repentance_n to_o some_o even_o in_o their_o last_o old_a age_n what_o thou_o say_v he_o shall_v thou_o also_o have_v it_o perhaps_o i_o shall_v say_v the_o sinner_n o_o why_o do_v thou_o say_v perhaps_o i_o shall_v say_v rather_o perhaps_o i_o shall_v not_o and_o then_o what_o will_v become_v of_o i_o i_o shall_v be_v damn_v think_v that_o it_o be_v thy_o soul_n which_o thou_o do_v deliberate_a on_o if_o thou_o be_v to_o go_v to_o the_o war_n will_v thou_o say_v i_o will_v not_o dispose_v of_o my_o affair_n first_o perhaps_o i_o shall_v return_v again_o many_o have_v do_v so_o or_o if_o thou_o be_v think_v to_o marty_n will_v thou_o say_v i_o will_v marry_v a_o poor_a woman_n perhaps_o i_o shall_v grow_v rich_a many_o have_v do_v so_o or_o if_o thou_o be_v to_o build_v a_o house_n will_v thou_o lay_v rot_a foundation_n and_o say_v perhaps_o my_o house_n will_v stand_v why_o will_v thou_o then_o upon_o rot_a and_o uncertain_a ground_n build_v the_o salvation_n of_o thy_o soul_n all_o these_o be_v uncertainty_n and_o so_o be_v thy_o life_n and_o thy_o repentance_n death_n come_v as_o a_o self_fw-mi and_o we_o know_v not_o at_o what_o hour_n the_o thief_n will_v come_v the_o rich_a man_n be_v glory_v in_o his_o riches_n and_o present_o he_o hear_v a_o voice_n from_o god_n say_v 12._o luc._n 12._o this_o night_n they_o require_v thy_o soul_n of_o thou_o absalon_n be_v domineer_a with_o a_o glorious_a army_n of_o rebel_n and_o present_o his_o army_n be_v lose_v and_o himself_o ride_v away_o be_v hang_v by_o the_o hair_n in_o a_o tree_n and_o there_o come_v loab_n with_o three_o lance_n and_o stick_v they_o all_o in_o his_o hart_n our_o life_n be_v as_o the_o turn_n of_o a_o die_n subject_a to_o many_o uncertainty_n and_o so_o be_v our_o repentance_n if_o we_o be_v true_o wise_a we_o will_v take_v the_o safe_a way_n and_o that_o be_v to_o fly_v sin_n and_o to_o be_v allwais_o prepare_v for_o death_n he_o that_o be_v to_o pass_v through_o a_o dangerous_a wilderness_n in_o which_o many_o have_v be_v kill_v will_v he_o not_o choose_v the_o safe_a way_n that_o he_o can_v the_o way_n of_o virtue_n be_v a_o safe_a way_n the_o way_n of_o sin_n be_v full_a of_o danger_n thousand_o have_v perish_v in_o it_o and_o none_o can_v perish_v but_o in_o it_o some_o indeed_o have_v turn_v back_o and_o forsake_v that_o way_n again_o but_o that_o be_v a_o hazard_n fly_v grom_a drunkenness_n poenit_fw-la amb._n exhort_v ad_fw-la poenit_fw-la say_v s._n ambrose_n from_o concupiscence_n and_o from_o evil_a talk_n man_n ought_v not_o only_o after_o his_o sin_n to_o refrain_v these_o thing_n but_o also_o when_o he_o be_v sound_a and_o in_o good_a health_n because_o he_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o shall_v repent_v and_o confess_v his_o sin_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o priest_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n either_o he_o shall_v repent_v or_o he_o shall_v not_o which_o of_o they_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v i_o know_v not_o but_o that_o which_o i_o counsel_n be_v to_o leave_v the_o uncertain_a and_o to_o choose_v the_o certain_a all_o that_o can_v be_v say_v be_v that_o he_o may_v repent_v but_o this_o be_v uncertain_a certain_a it_o be_v that_o if_o he_o have_v sin_v he_o have_v deserve_v hell_n and_o that_o if_o he_o repent_v not_o he_o shall_v be_v damn_v let_v not_o the_o sinner_n then_o flatter_v himself_o with_o presumption_n of_o the_o divine_a mercy_n and_o of_o repentance_n it_o be_v a_o flattery_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o delude_v and_o to_o draw_v he_o into_o hell_n consider_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v in_o itself_o and_o the_o evil_n that_o of_o themselves_o follow_v it_o behold_v it_o as_o a_o monster_n that_o come_v to_o kill_v thou_o and_o to_o deliver_v thou_o into_o the_o devil_n power_n think_v the_o most_o horrible_a spectacle_n that_o thou_o can_v devise_v to_o think_v and_o know_v that_o thy_o soul_n in_o sin_n be_v more_o horrible_a and_o deform_v than_o it_o our_o soul_n say_v s._n chrysostome_n in_o possession_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v in_o worse_a state_n than_o our_o body_n possess_v by_o he_o for_o although_o sinner_n say_v he_o foam_v not_o at_o the_o mouth_n roar_v not_o with_o their_o voice_n nor_o writhe_v their_o head_n and_o eye_n as_o possess_v person_n do_v yet_o they_o be_v much_o more_o deform_v inward_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o in_o another_o place_n declare_v how_o all_o thing_n be_v confound_v by_o sin_n he_o affirm_v that_o it_o make_v man_n in_o some_o respect_v worse_a than_o devil_n for_o the_o devil_n say_v he_o hurt_v not_o those_o of_o their_o own_o kind_n but_o man_n by_o sin_n care_v not_o what_o hurt_n they_o do_v to_o one_o another_o and_o of_o malice_n will_v kill_v even_o their_o near_a friend_n and_o kindred_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o malice_n of_o sin_n now_o of_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n such_o be_v the_o malice_n of_o sin_n as_o be_v declare_v so_o contrary_a to_o reason_n and_o to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n it_o can_v stand_v with_o his_o divine_a goodness_n to_o impute_v the_o malice_n of_o it_o to_o he_o and_o to_o make_v not_o he_o the_o author_n of_o it_o some_o thing_n there_o be_v so_o manifest_a in_o themselves_o that_o even_o at_o the_o first_o apprehension_n without_o dispute_v we_o assent_n unto_o they_o and_o although_o strong_a and_o difficult_a argument_n may_v seem_v sometime_o to_o arise_v against_o they_o as_o they_o may_v against_o all_o verity_n whatsoever_o yet_o they_o be_v allwais_o to_o be_v grant_v and_o to_o be_v keep_v as_o firm_a and_o undeniable_a principle_n now_o if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n manifest_a in_o itself_o and_o to_o be_v keep_v as_o a_o firm_a and_o certain_a principle_n it_o be_v that_o god_n be_v infinite_a in_o goodness_n infinite_o hate_v sin_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o evil_n which_o it_o contain_v but_o it_o must_v proceed_v from_o some_o cause_n which_o be_v quite_o opposite_a to_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o although_o some_o argument_n may_v be_v object_v against_o this_o yet_o it_o be_v a_o extreme_a boldness_n and_o profaneness_n in_o any_o man_n to_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o but_o even_o as_o all_o philosopher_n agree_v to_o the_o axiom_n that_o the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o any_o of_o its_o part_n although_o argument_n be_v often_o object_v against_o it_o so_o ought_v we_o allwais_o to_o agree_v and_o much_o more_o firm_o to_o ground_n ourselves_o upon_o this_o verity_n that_o all_o goodness_n be_v of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o evil_n which_o we_o do_v be_v of_o ourselves_o according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o prophet_n perdition_n be_v thou_o o_o israel_n 13._o ose_n 13._o only_o in_o i_o thy_o help_n but_o heretic_n contemn_v all_o authority_n and_o deny_v the_o principle_n which_o the_o whole_a catholic_a world_n receive_v to_o follow_v their_o own_o fancy_n and_o conceit_n make_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v more_o uncertain_a then_o the_o principle_n of_o philosophy_n they_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o be_v bring_v to_o deny_v that_o which_o all_o philosopher_n have_v settle_v and_o be_v ashamed_a to_o deny_v that_o which_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n have_v teach_v and_o establish_v in_o faith_n but_o one_o arch_a haeretike_n will_v contradict_v they_o all_o and_o get_v follower_n to_o maintain_v his_o singularity_n against_o they_o thus_o
thy_o salvation_n and_o what_o he_o require_v to_o be_v do_v by_o thou_o he_o stand_v at_o the_o door_n of_o thy_o hart_n and_o desire_v to_o enter_v he_o knock_v enlighten_v thy_o understanding_n and_o inspire_v thy_o will_n to_o open_v to_o he_o that_o be_v to_o consent_v to_o the_o good_a work_n to_o the_o which_o he_o move_v thou_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v open_v it_o he_o enter_v with_o his_o sanctify_a grace_n and_o bless_v thou_o but_o he_o do_v not_o enter_v whether_o thou_o will_v or_o no_o he_o crave_v entrance_n and_o give_v thou_o power_n to_o open_v unto_o he_o and_o if_o thou_o will_v not_o open_v thy_o hart_n and_o have_v blessing_n blame_v none_o but_o thyself_o say_v peccavi_fw-la i_o have_v sin_v so_o do_v david_n manasses_n job_n and_o all_o true_a repenter_n ever_o say_v and_o never_o say_v peccasti_n thou_o have_v sin_v to_o god_n but_o if_o thou_o make_v god_n the_o author_n of_o thy_o sin_n and_o not_o thy_o own_o freewill_n thou_o blame_v he_o and_o say_v peccasti_n thou_o have_v sin_v to_o he_o which_o be_v no_o humility_n in_o thyself_o nor_o repentance_n at_o all_o no_o man_n repent_v but_o for_o his_o own_o sin_n there_o remain_v now_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o several_a kind_n of_o sin_n quest_n how_o many_o kind_n of_o sin_n be_v there_o ans_fw-fr there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o sin_n original_a sin_n and_o actual_a sin_n quest_n what_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o original_a and_o actual_a sin_n ans_fw-fr original_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o we_o be_v bear_v in_o actual_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o we_o commit_v the_o first_o division_n of_o sin_n may_v be_v into_o original_a and_o actual_a and_o although_o original_a sin_n be_v actual_a as_o it_o be_v act_v and_o commit_v by_o adam_n and_o be_v mortal_a in_o that_o it_o bring_v death_n both_o to_o he_o and_o we_o yet_o for_o more_o clearness_n we_o will_v distinguish_v first_o original_a and_o actual_a and_o then_o mortal_a and_o venial_a sin_n original_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o we_o contract_v from_o adam_n our_o origen_n and_o which_o we_o commit_v not_o ourselves_o but_o bring_v into_o the_o world_n with_o us._n adam_n be_v place_v in_o paradise_n his_o soul_n endow_v with_o original_a justice_n and_o in_o his_o body_n he_o be_v immortal_a he_o have_v the_o command_n of_o all_o earthly_a creature_n enjoy_v free_o the_o pleasure_n of_o they_o and_o without_o die_v shall_v have_v be_v transfer_v after_o a_o time_n to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o heaven_n these_o gift_n be_v give_v to_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n and_o they_o successive_o have_v obtain_v they_o if_o they_o have_v not_o sin_v but_o he_o sin_v we_o be_v deprive_v of_o that_o original_a justice_n and_o other_o gift_n and_o the_o wart_n and_o privation_n of_o they_o be_v call_v original_a sin_n in_o us._n we_o have_v no_o wrong_n do_v we_o in_o this_o that_o we_o be_v bear_v deprive_v of_o our_o father_n gift_n because_o they_o be_v give_v to_o he_o and_o his_o posterity_n only_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o sin_v not_o as_o though_o a_o king_n of_o his_o own_o freewill_n shall_v bestow_v some_o place_n of_o honour_n and_o benefit_n upon_o a_o subject_n for_o himself_o and_o his_o posterity_n to_o enjoy_v after_o he_o upon_o condition_n that_o they_o allwais_o keep_v themselves_o obedient_a and_o loyal_a to_o he_o but_o if_o he_o or_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v guilty_a of_o treason_n than_o they_o shall_v loose_v that_o place_n and_o benefit_n now_o he_o or_o some_o of_o they_o break_v the_o condition_n by_o disobey_v the_o king_n they_o be_v just_o deprive_v of_o that_o place_n so_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n which_o god_n give_v to_o adam_n for_o himself_o and_o for_o we_o be_v no_o way_n due_a but_o of_o the_o goodness_n and_o liberality_n of_o god_n and_o grant_v conditional_o if_o we_o remain_v loyal_a to_o he_o we_o commit_v treason_n be_v just_o deprive_v of_o those_o gift_n which_o he_o have_v and_o be_v bear_v without_o they_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o be_v because_o the_o father_n and_o child_n in_o this_o case_n be_v as_o it_o be_v all_o one_o man_n and_o have_v as_o it_o be_v all_o one_o will_n and_o as_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o one_o only_a part_n of_o man_n to_o wit_n by_o his_o will_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o whole_a man_n and_o punish_v in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o part_n so_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v by_o adam_n be_v just_o punish_v in_o all_o man_n because_o all_o man_n be_v his_o child_n and_o as_o it_o be_v one_o man_n in_o he_o a_o spend_v thrift_n father_n waste_v his_o estate_n not_o only_o from_o himself_o but_o also_o from_o his_o child_n because_o they_o be_v suppose_v and_o be_v indeed_o in_o riches_n one_o body_n and_o one_o mind_n with_o he_o and_o can_v blame_v none_o but_o he_o who_o consume_v those_o riches_n which_o they_o shall_v have_v have_v so_o all_o man_n in_o adam_n be_v one_o man_n his_o will_n be_v the_o will_n of_o all_o he_o consume_v the_o riches_n which_o we_o shall_v have_v have_v and_o we_o be_v just_o deprive_v of_o they_o actual_a sin_n be_v that_o which_o we_o commit_v sin_n actual_a sin_n and_o be_v therefore_o call_v actual_a because_o we_o act_v it_o ourselves_o and_o bring_v it_o not_o original_o into_o the_o world_n with_o us._n and_o so_o the_o sin_n which_o adam_n commit_v and_o which_o be_v original_a in_o we_o be_v actual_a in_o he_o because_o he_o act_v it_o and_o have_v it_o not_o by_o infection_n from_o another_o as_o we_o have_v from_o he_o quest_n how_o many_o kind_n of_o actual_a sin_n be_v there_o ans_fw-fr there_o be_v two_o kind_n of_o actual_a sin_n mortal_a sin_n and_o venial_a sin_n quest_n what_o be_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o mortal_a and_o venial_a sin_n ans_fw-fr mortal_a sin_n quite_o deprive_v we_o of_o god_n grace_n venial_a sin_n only_o lessen_v and_o diminish_v the_o fervour_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o us._n mortal_a sin_n be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v deadly_a sin_n it_o be_v a_o mortal_a and_o deadly_a wound_n bring_v death_n to_o our_o soul_n in_o that_o it_o take_v quite_o away_o the_o divine_a grace_n from_o they_o which_o be_v their_o spiritual_a life_n 6._o rom._n 6._o the_o stipend_n of_o sin_n say_v the_o apostle_n be_v death_n that_o be_v the_o reward_n of_o mortal_a sin_n this_o be_v the_o sin_n which_o be_v allwais_o understand_v when_o we_o read_v or_o name_v sin_n in_o general_a and_o speak_v of_o the_o malice_n of_o it_o a_o monster_n so_o deform_v that_o if_o we_o can_v see_v the_o deformity_n of_o it_o we_o shall_v think_v true_o that_o all_o the_o torment_n of_o this_o world_n be_v rather_o to_o be_v suffer_v then_o one_o mortal_a sin_n to_o be_v commit_v it_o divide_v we_o from_o god_n it_o put_v we_o into_o the_o devil_n power_n it_o bring_v eternal_a punishment_n and_o temporal_a to_o the_o ruin_n of_o kingdom_n citty_n and_o many_o noble_a family_n it_o cause_v fear_n and_o terror_n of_o conscience_n and_o leave_v our_o soul_n hateful_a and_o most_o horrible_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n we_o can_v not_o express_v nor_o conceive_v with_o sufficient_a horror_n the_o state_n of_o our_o soul_n when_o they_o be_v in_o mortal_a sin_n our_o body_n when_o they_o be_v dead_a become_v pale_a cold_a and_o ghastly_a but_o much_o more_o our_o soul_n in_o deadly_a sin_n we_o behold_v with_o horror_n the_o body_n of_o one_o that_o have_v kill_v drown_v or_o hang_v himself_o and_o it_o be_v not_o a_o horror_n to_o kill_v our_o own_o soul_n if_o any_o of_o this_o company_n shall_v now_o sudden_o fall_v down_o and_o die_v before_o we_o we_o shall_v all_o be_v terrify_v and_o affright_v at_o it_o then_o how_o shall_v we_o fear_v to_o fall_v into_o mortal_a sin_n by_o which_o we_o be_v instant_o kill_v and_o dead_a 57_o ber._n ad_fw-la eug._n l_o 4._o c._n 6._o esa_n 57_o a_o ass_n fall_v and_o there_o be_v allwais_o some_o to_o help_v she_o up_o again_o a_o soul_n perish_v and_o none_o regard_v it_o say_v s._n bernard_n so_o the_o prophet_n the_o just_a perish_v and_o there_o be_v none_o that_o consider_v in_o his_o hart_n if_o our_o head_n our_o breast_n or_o any_o other_o part_n pain_n we_o we_o complane_v and_o cry_v o_o my_o head_n my_o breast_n etc._n etc._n and_o we_o wound_n our_o soul_n unto_o death_n and_o never_o think_v nor_o say_v o_o my_o soul_n how_o great_o have_v the_o saint_n of_o god_n detest_a mortal_a sin_n how_o great_o have_v they_o bewail_v it_o in_o themselves_o and_o in_o other_o what_o penance_n have_v they_o undergo_v to_o satisfy_v for_o it_o what_o pain_n have_v they_o take_v to_o draw_v other_o out_o of_o
it_o it_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_a divine_n that_o all_o the_o evil_n of_o this_o world_n no_o not_o the_o eternal_a torment_n of_o all_o the_o damn_a spirit_n put_v together_o be_v equal_a to_o the_o evil_a of_o one_o mortal_a sin_n i_o will_v rather_o be_v send_v into_o hell_n 2.6_o mach._n 2.6_o say_v elcazarus_n when_o they_o persuade_v he_o to_o dissemble_v against_o his_o conscience_n for_o although_o at_o this_o present_a time_n i_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o punishment_n of_o man_n yet_o neither_o alive_a nor_o dead_a shall_v i_o escape_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o almighty_a euang_n greg._n h●_n 34._o in_o euang_n victorinus_n whilst_o he_o live_v in_o the_o wilderness_n be_v draw_v into_o the_o sin_n of_o fornication_n by_o a_o wicked_a delusion_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v so_o vex_v in_o conscience_n afterward_o that_o fasten_v his_o hand_n into_o a_o piece_n of_o cleave_a wood_n he_o live_v three_o year_n with_o only_a raw_a herb_n and_o water_n after_o that_o he_o wrought_v miracle_n become_v a_o bishop_n and_o at_o last_o a_o glorious_a martyr_n the_o magdalen_n move_v to_o repentance_n come_v present_o into_o the_o pharisys_n house_n 7._o luc._n 7._o and_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o weep_v in_o public_a so_o many_o tear_n that_o she_o wash_v the_o foot_n of_o christ_n with_o they_o s._n peter_n after_o his_o sin_n go_v out_o present_o and_o weep_v bitter_o and_o so_o great_a be_v his_o sorrow_n ever_o after_o that_o he_o be_v record_v by_o s._n clement_n who_o live_v with_o he_o recognit_v clem._n in_o recognit_v to_o have_v carry_v allwais_o in_o his_o hand_n a_o little_a linen_n napkin_n to_o dry_v his_o face_n from_o tear_n but_o the_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n weep_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o other_o shall_v move_v we_o more_o than_o these_o who_o weep_v for_o their_o own_o sin_n christ_n as_o he_o come_v down_o mount_v olivet_n have_v before_o his_o eye_n a_o full_a view_n of_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v strike_v with_o such_o a_o apprehension_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o that_o people_n that_o beginning_n to_o speak_v he_o be_v interrupt_v with_o tear_n and_o can_v not_o go_v on_o for_o weep_v and_o he_o weep_v also_o for_o lazarus_n long_o dead_a and_o putrify_v that_o be_v to_o signify_v the_o sinner_n dead_a and_o putrify_v in_o long_o continue_v sin_n that_o we_o may_v see_v how_o much_o he_o love_v our_o soul_n and_o how_o he_o lament_v at_o their_o spiritual_a death_n 16._o mat._n 16._o what_o do_v it_o profit_v a_o man_n if_o he_o gain_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o sustain_v the_o damage_n of_o his_o soul_n my_o soul_n be_v all_o the_o world_n to_o i_o and_o when_o i_o come_v to_o die_v i_o shall_v find_v it_o so_o grant_v we_o o_o lord_n that_o we_o may_v save_v our_o soul_n the_o whole_a world_n beside_o we_o will_v loose_v it_o willing_o and_o this_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o mortal_a sin_n that_o he_o that_o commit_v but_o one_o and_o die_v in_o it_o be_v as_o sure_a to_o suffer_v shippwracke_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o to_o be_v damn_v into_o hell_n as_o though_o he_o be_v guilty_a of_o all_o the_o mortal_a sin_n in_o the_o world_n 5._o ja._n 5._o according_a to_o that_o of_o s_o james_n whosoever_o but_o offend_v in_o one_o be_v make_v guilty_a of_o all_o to_o wit_n so_o far_o as_o to_o the_o guilt_n and_o punishment_n of_o hell_n i_o have_v be_v desire_v by_o some_o to_o give_v they_o some_o such_o distinction_n betwixt_o mortal_a and_o venial_a sin_n as_o that_o they_o may_v allwais_o know_v by_o it_o when_o the_o sin_n which_o they_o commit_v be_v mortal_a but_o this_o be_v unpossible_a for_o that_o the_o circumstance_n be_v infinite_a which_o may_v aggravate_v or_o lessen_v the_o malice_n of_o sin_n so_o that_o little_a sin_n may_v become_v great_a and_o great_a sin_n little_a one_o and_o sometime_o no_o sin_n at_o all_o beside_o god_n will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o know_v for_o certain_a whether_o we_o be_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n or_o no_o according_a to_o that_o of_o ecclesiastes_n man_n know_v not_o whether_o he_o be_v worthy_a of_o love_n or_o hatred_n and_o job_n although_o i_o shall_v be_v simple_a 9_o eccl._n 9_o job._n 9_o the_o same_o shall_v my_o soul_n be_v ignorant_a of_o yet_o thus_o much_o may_v be_v say_v for_o their_o satisfaction_n that_o sin_n against_o any_o of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n or_o against_o any_o of_o the_o precept_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o come_v to_o a_o notable_a degree_n of_o malice_n or_o deformity_n or_o if_o they_o be_v intend_v think_v or_o doubt_v to_o be_v so_o they_o be_v mortal_a venial_a be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v easy_o pardonable_a and_o so_o a_o venial_a sin_n be_v a_o sin_n which_o easy_o obtain_v pardon_v a_o little_a sin_n which_o diminish_v the_o fervour_n of_o divine_a grace_n in_o we_o but_o take_v not_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n from_o we_o so_o as_o to_o put_v we_o in_o state_n of_o damnation_n it_o make_v we_o to_o grow_v cold_a and_o cold_a in_o devotion_n and_o dispose_v by_o little_a and_o little_a to_o some_o mortal_a sin_n and_o then_o by_o that_o we_o lose_v quite_o the_o divine_a grace_n and_o be_v in_o state_n of_o damnation_n so_o that_o mortal_a sin_n be_v quite_o opposite_a and_o incompatible_a with_o the_o divine_a grace_n venial_a sin_n be_v compatible_a and_o may_v stand_v with_o it_o author_n common_o declare_v this_o by_o the_o similitude_n of_o a_o travele_a go_v out_o of_o his_o way_n he_o may_v either_o go_v a_o quite_o contrary_a way_n or_o he_o may_v go_v wrong_a yet_o not_o quite_o contrary_a to_o the_o right_a way_n by_o mortal_a sin_n we_o go_v the_o quite_o contrary_a way_n from_o heaven_n to_o wit_n to_o hell_n by_o venial_a sin_n we_o go_v not_o to_o hell_n yet_o we_o go_v wrong_a and_o out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n s._n augustine_n compare_v venial_a sin_n to_o scab_n that_o deform_v and_o disfigure_v the_o body_n but_o kill_v it_o not_o so_o venial_a sin_n deform_v and_o deminish_v the_o beauty_n of_o our_o soul_n but_o leave_v they_o still_o with_o spiritual_a life_n and_o declare_v some_o venial_a sin_n in_o particular_a he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v a_o venial_a sin_n to_o laugh_v immoderate_o 38._o aug._n l._n de_fw-fr nat_n &_o gra_fw-mi c_o 38._o to_o jest_v too_o much_o to_o desire_v something_o intemperate_o to_o pluck_v fruit_n over_o greedy_o and_o the_o like_a final_o whatsoever_o we_o think_v that_o we_o do_v not_o well_o in_o we_o may_v accuse_v ourselves_o of_o it_o as_o at_o least_o of_o a_o venial_a sin_n that_o all_o sin_n be_v not_o damnable_a to_o hell_n but_o that_o there_o be_v some_o such_o lesser_a sin_n which_o we_o call_v venial_a it_o be_v manifest_a by_o diverse_a place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 24._o prou._n 24._o seven_o time_n shall_v the_o just_a fall_n and_o shall_v rise_v again_o but_o the_o impious_a shall_v fall_v into_o evil_n where_o we_o see_v that_o a_o man_n may_v fall_v into_o some_o sin_n and_o yet_o be_v just_a he_o that_o contemn_v small_a thing_n shall_v fall_v by_o little_a and_o little_a 19_o eccl._n 19_o by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o one_o may_v sin_v by_o small_a thing_n and_o by_o little_a and_o little_a before_o that_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o divine_a grace_n 3_o ja_n 3_o s._n james_n say_v that_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o and_o he_o can_v be_v think_v to_o speak_v of_o mortal_a sin_n s._n john_n have_v declare_v that_o by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n we_o be_v cleanse_v from_o sin_n add_v h_o present_o 1.1_o io._n 1.1_o if_o we_o shall_v say_v that_o we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o seduce_v ourselves_o and_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o in_o us._n by_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o we_o may_v be_v so_o purge_v from_o sin_n as_o to_o be_v in_o state_n of_o grace_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o yet_o to_o have_v some_o sin_n this_o be_v also_o most_o congruous_a to_o reason_n and_o agreeable_a with_o the_o divine_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n for_o if_o it_o be_v a_o unreasonable_a severity_n for_o king_n and_o common_a wealth_n to_o punish_v every_o little_a fault_n with_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n far_o must_v it_o be_v from_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n to_o punish_v every_o little_a excess_n or_o defect_n every_o little_a anger_n neglect_n distraction_n in_o our_o prayer_n and_o the_o like_a with_o the_o eternal_a death_n of_o hell_n mortal_a sin_n be_v never_o take_v away_o but_o by_o the_o sacrament_n in_o deed_n or_o in_o desire_n venial_a sin_n be_v blot_v out_o by_o every_o good_a work_n which_o we_o do_v for_o as_o every_o venial_a sin_n deminish_v the_o fervour_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o we_o and_o
subiect_v we_o as_o liable_a to_o some_o punishment_n so_o every_o good_a work_n which_o we_o do_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n advance_v we_o in_o the_o divine_a grace_n and_o take_v away_o some_o of_o our_o due_a punishment_n but_o although_o venial_a sin_n deprive_v we_o no●_n of_o the_o divine_a grace_n nor_o make_v we_o as_o the_o enemy_n of_o god_n guilty_a of_o eternal_a damnation_n yet_o we_o ought_v to_o beware_v of_o they_o and_o to_o be_v careful_a especial_o that_o we_o get_v no_o evil_a habit_n nor_o affection_n to_o any_o venial_a sin_n for_o that_o be_v very_o dangerous_a and_o if_o we_o get_v not_o also_o a_o habit_n of_o repent_v present_o for_o it_o it_o will_v without_o doubt_n draw_v we_o in_o the_o end_n into_o some_o mortal_a sin_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o may_v say_v of_o venial_a sin_n that_o they_o deprive_v we_o of_o god_n grace_n and_o even_o kill_v our_o soul_n dispositive_o that_o be_v they_o dispose_v we_o to_o mortal_a sin_n b●_n which_o our_o soul_n be_v immediate_o kill_v even_o as_o a_o little_a hole_n or_o leck_n in_o a_o ship_n neglect_v cause_v a_o great_a breach_n by_o which_o she_o be_v sudden_o over_o charge_v and_o sink_v down_o to_o the_o bottom_n so_o little_a fault_n neglect_v bring_v great_a sin_n and_o be_v sometime_o bewail_v with_o everlasting_a tear_n in_o hell_n and_o therefore_o to_o prevent_v great_a sin_n we_o must_v have_v a_o eye_n over_o our_o lesser_a fault_n to_o mend_v they_o by_o time_n beside_o a_o good_a and_o love_a servant_n will_v fear_v to_o offend_v in_o any_o thing_n lest_o by_o commit_v that_o by_o which_o his_o master_n affection_n shall_v bellessen_v towards_o he_o he_o may_v come_v in_o the_o end_n quite_o to_o loose_v his_o favour_n this_o be_v that_o say_v s._n quemdam_fw-la hiero_n to_o 7._o instruens_fw-la amicum_fw-la quemdam_fw-la hierome_n which_o the_o apocalypse_n reprove_v in_o the_o bishop_n of_o ephesus_n who_o be_v call_v a_o angel_n for_o that_o he_o have_v in_o his_o conscience_n the_o merit_n of_o many_o good_a work_n much_o labour_n and_o suffering_n for_o christ_n sake_n but_o because_o the_o edge_n of_o his_o former_a piety_n be_v something_o dull_v and_o the_o heat_n of_o his_o love_n begin_v to_o abate_v he_o be_v call_v and_o stir_v up_o to_o repentance_n 2._o apoc._n 2._o i_o know_v thy_o work_n and_o labour_n and_o patience_n that_o thou_o can_v not_o bear_v evil_a man_n and_o have_v try_v they_o that_o say_v themselves_o to_o be_v apostle_n and_o be_v not_o and_o have_v find_v they_o liar_n and_o thou_o have_v bear_v for_o my_o name_n and_o have_v not_o saint_v but_o i_o have_v against_o thou_o a_o few_o thing_n because_o thou_o have_v leave_v thy_o first_o charity_n be_v mindful_a therefore_o from_o whence_o thou_o be_v fall_v and_o do_v penance_n and_o what_o penance_n may_v we_o read_v that_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n have_v do_v even_o for_o little_a venial_a sin_n because_o they_o know_v that_o by_o all_o such_o sin_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n be_v endanger_v and_o that_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o his_o grace_n be_v better_a to_o they_o and_o in_o itself_o more_o precious_a than_o all_o this_o world_n s._n theresa_n conceive_v so_o great_o against_o the_o least_o o●_n her_o sin_n that_o she_o speak_v of_o they_o as_o heinous_a offence_n and_o if_o it_o happen_v that_o in_o sing_v in_o the_o choir_n she_o miss_v in_o any_o thing_n present_o in_o the_o sigh●_n of_o all_o she_o prostrate_v herself_o to_o the_o ground_n with_o such_o true_a shame_n and_o sorrow_n that_o the_o rest_n of_o th●_n nun_n be_v interrupt_v from_o sing_v and_o can_v not_o go_v on_o for_o tear_n grant_v we_o o_o lord_n by_o the_o merit_n of_o thy_o passion_n and_o by_o the_o prayer_n of_o thy_o bless_a mother_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a court_n of_o heaven_n that_o we_o may_v never_o loose_v thy_o grace_n by_o mortal_a sin_n and_o may_v allwais_o fear_v to_o offend_v by_o venial_a i_o have_v do_v now_o my_o dear_a reader_n that_o which_o i_o intend_v in_o this_o book_n i_o have_v give_v thou_o for_o thy_o instruction_n a_o brief_a sum_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a doctrine_n in_o a_o few_o short_a answer_n to_o be_v get_v without_o book_n and_o the_o declaration_n of_o they_o at_o large_a in_o their_o proper_a place_n i_o have_v set_v before_o thou_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n one_o supreme_a eternal_a and_o omnipotent_a power_n god_n the_o beginner_n and_o conserver_n of_o all_o creature_n to_o be_v worship_v by_o thou_o and_o for_o thy_o comfort_n and_o confirmation_n in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n i_o have_v show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n the_o catholic_a church_n reach_v that_o a_o eternal_a retribution_n ofteward_n or_o punishment_n remain_v according_a to_o our_o work_n good_a or_o evil_n good_a work_n by_o god_n grace_n be_v in_o our_o own_o hand_n if_o we_o will_n what_o now_o remain_v but_o to_o excite_v our_o will_n this_o also_o i_o have_v do_v according_a to_o my_o ability_n exhort_v thou_o to_o virtue_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o now_o at_o last_o i_o entreat_v and_o conjure_v thou_o by_o the_o omnipotent_a power_n and_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n that_o make_v thou_o by_o his_o justice_n and_o mercy_n which_o one_o day_n thou_o must_v try_v by_o the_o torment_n of_o the_o damn_a and_o joy_n of_o the_o bless_a soul_n by_o all_o which_o thou_o can_v imagine_v to_o be_v fear_v or_o desire_v that_o thou_o fear_v 〈…〉_o love_n he_o look_v down_o to_o hell_n and_o fear_v he_o in_o that_o horrible_a eternity_n look_v up_o to_o heaven_n and_o love_v he_o seek_v he_o and_o enjoy_v he_o in_o that_o happy_a state_n resolve_v from_o this_o very_a instant_n upon_o a_o virtuous_a life_n begin_v now_o a_o new_a and_o persevere_v to_o the_o gain_n of_o that_o everlasting_a life_n which_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o all_o instruction_n live_v sweet_a jesu_n king_n of_o eternal_a glory_n live_v live_v and_o reign_v in_o our_o soul_n here_o and_o in_o heaven_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n laus_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o dei_fw-la genitrici_fw-la virgini_fw-la maria._n a_o table_n a_o actvall_a sin_n 715_o altar_n 603._o altar_n towards_o the_o east_n 603._o alm_n deed_n 473_o amen_o 505_o angel_n gabriel_n 510._o 532._o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n his_o apparition_n to_o the_o bless_a virgin_n 533._o etc._n etc._n anger_n 415._o remedys_n against_o anger_n 420_o the_o apostle_n preach_v 137_o the_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n 164_o atheism_n and_o atheist_n 78._o 79._o 80._o etc._n etc._n attribute_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n 142_o b_o baptism_n the_o necessity_n of_o baptism_n 283._o baptism_n a_o sacrament_n 284_o the_o effect_n of_o baptism_n 285._o the_o baptism_n of_o s._n john_n 286._o the_o caeremony_n of_o baptism_n 287_o bead_n 555._o blessing_n of_o bead_n 572_o aue_fw-la mary_n bell._n 564_o bloody_a sin_n horrible_a to_o nature_n 416_o c_o carnal_a sin_n 412._o severe_o punish_v of_o god_n 422._o the_o cause_n and_o root_n of_o carnality_n 428._o remedys_n against_o carnal_a sin_n 428_o the_o catholic_a church_n prove_v by_o induction_n from_o all_o other_o religion_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n 250._o catholic_n according_a to_o their_o ground_n can_v not_o with_o reason_n seek_v unto_o any_o other_o church_n not_o doubt_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o all_o other_o church_n even_o according_a to_o their_o own_o ground_n ought_v to_o doubt_v allwais_o and_o can_v never_o be_v satisfy_v till_o they_o come_v to_o the_o catholic_a church_n 35._o character_n vide_fw-la sacrament_n 275_o charity_n towards_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n 409.491_o among_o the_o primitive_a christian_n 418_o ceremony_n 287.598_o two_o kind_n of_o ceremony_n 290._o child_n education_n 1_o christ_n 109._o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n ever_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n 113._o christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v to_o be_v true_a god_n 120._o jesus_n christ_n our_o saviour_n be_v the_o true_a messiah_n foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n 122._o christianity_n demonstrate_v by_o holy_a scripture_n and_o miracle_n 113._o unto_o 140._o christ_n be_v more_o sensible_a of_o pain_n than_o other_o 151._o christ_n prophesy_v of_o his_o passion_n 153._o christ_n passion_n be_v voluntary_a 154._o christ_n the_o anointed_n as_o he_o be_v prophet_n priest_n and_o king_n 112._o christmas_n day_n 148_o church_n the_o church_n must_v try_v the_o private_a spirit_n of_o all_o man_n 24.184.641_o no_o order_n in_o religion_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n ibid._n the_o church_n can_v not_o err_v 35._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n 184.641_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a 177._o it_o